A handbook prepared under contract for the

Commission of the European Communities,

Directorate-General for Energy byEuropean Small Hydropower Association (ESHA)The drawing on the cover, published bv courtesvof INIC (Instituto Nacional de InvestigaaoCientifica), Portugal it is based on a photographvappeared in the book, "Sistemas de Muagem",written bv Fernando Gallano, Ernesto Jeiga deOliveira and Benfamin Pereira.ADDRESS WHERE TO GET FURTHER INFORMATIONDG XVIIEuropean Commision200 rue de Ia LoiB-1049 BruseIasBIgicaFax: +32-2-295 0150E-Mail: info@bxl.dg17.cec.beWorld Wide Web http://europa.eu.int/en/comm/dg17/dg17home.htmPublished books DG XVII - 97/010.LEGAL NOTICE: Neither the Commission of the European Communities nor any person acting on behalf ofthe Commission is responsible for the use which might be made of the following informationD I R E D I R E D I R E D I R E D I R E C C C C C T O R A T O R A T O R A T O R A T O R A T E T E T E T E T E G E N E R A L G E N E R A L G E N E R A L G E N E R A L G E N E R A L F O R F O R F O R F O R F O R E N E R G E N E R G E N E R G E N E R G E N E R G Y YY YY ( D G X V I I ) ( D G X V I I ) ( D G X V I I ) ( D G X V I I ) ( D G X V I I )LAYMAN'S HANDBOOKON HOW TO DEVELOP A SMALL HYDRO SITE(Second Edition)1une 1998 E U R E U R E U R E U R E U R O P E O P E O P E O P E O P E A N A N A N A N A N C O M C O M C O M C O M C O M M M M M M I S I I S I I S I I S I I S I O O O O O N NN NNAUTHORCelso PencheDr Ingeniero de Minas (U.Politcnica de Madrid)This handbook, an updated version of the original "Layman's Handbook on how to develop a Small Hydro Site,published by the Commission in 1993, has been written, in the frame of the ALTENER programme, undercontract with the Commission of the European Communities (Directorate General for Energy, DG XVII). It hasnot been designed to replace professional expertise but it is hoped it is comprehensive enough to adviselaymen on all necessary procedures that should be followed to develop a site. However its content includesenough technical information, so a non-specialist engineer would be able to produce a primary feasibility report.Hydraulic engineering is based on the principles of fluid mechanics. However until now there does not exist,and probably never will, a general methodology for the mathematical analysis of the movement of the fluids.Based on the large amount of accumulated experience there exists many empirical relationships to achievepractical engineering solutions with the movement of the water, the fluid that concerns hydroelectricity. Chapter2, based on part of the original chapter 5 written by Eric Wilson - is devoted to this subject.All hydroelectric generation depends on falling water. The first step to develop a site must address theavailability of an adequate water supply. Chapter 3 is entirely devoted to this subject, and particularly tocomment on the European AtIas of SmaII ScaIe Hydropower PotentiaI, developed by the Institute ofHydrology in the UK, on behalf of ESHA and with the financial aid of the DG XVII.Experience shows that many small hydro plants have failed because they were poorly designed, built oroperated. Most of these failures seepage under the weir, open channel slides occurred through a lack ofproper geological studies of the site. Chapter 4 incorporates guidelines on such studies.Hydraulic structures and ancillaries represent almost fifty per cent of the investment cost. If poorly designedthey will require such high maintenance costs that the investment will become unprofitable. Chapter 5 isdevoted to these structures.Turbines transform the potential energy of water to mechanical rotational energy, which in turn is transformedinto electrical energy in the generators. Chapter 6 is devoted to the study of turbines and generators and to thedevices employed to control them.Although since the publication of the first edition of the Layman's Handbook many sites have been developed inthe E.U, the installed capacity would be greater if the administrative procedures to authorise the use of waterhad been simpler. Many hundreds of authorisation requests are pending approval, mainly because ofsupposed conflict with the environment. Chapter 7, "Environmental impact and its mitigation, intends to providea few guidelines to help the designer to propose mitigating measures that can be easily agreed with thelicensing authorities. The various papers presented to HIDROENERGIA and more specifically to the EuropeanWorkshop on THERMIE "Strategies to overcome the environmental burden of small hydro and wind energiesthat was held at Vitoria in October 1996, constitute the basis of this chapter.An investor decides to develop a small hydro site in order to obtain a reasonable profit. To do that his decisionshould be based on sound economic principles. Chapter 8 shows how the financial mathematics can help tocalculate the cost of the kWh produced annually, and to compare different possible alternatives for the scheme.Chapter 9 reviews the administrative procedures and buy-back tariffs nowadays in force. Unfortunately thetrend toward deregulation of the electricity market makes the situation very volatile, preventing accuratereporting of the market from an institutional viewpoint.IntroductionAcknowledgementsAlthough based on the original version, the handbook has been entirely rewritten. The original chapter 5 hasbeen split in two: chapter 2, a fundamental treatment of engineering hydraulics, and chapter 3 devotedexclusively to the water resource and to the possibilities offered by the European AtIas of SmaII ScaIeHydropower PotentiaI. The Institute of Hydrology (IH) in the UK, on behalf of ESHA, has developed thiscomputer program, with the financial aid of the DG XVII, as a tool to enable potential investors to define thehydrological potential, for any ungauged site within the European Union. We acknowledge the co-operation ofIH, and more specifically of Gwyn Rees and Karen Kroker, by allowing us to reproduce entire paragraphs of the"Technical Reference and User Guide of the Atlas..Two well known experts, Bryan Leyland from Australia and Freddy Isambert from France, presented toHIDROENERGIA 95 two papers, dealing with the topic "lessons from failures, describing several schemesthat, due to a lack of adequate geological studies, failed outrageously during its operation. On the base ofthese experiences a new chapter, Chapter 4, devoted to the technologies employed to study the site in depth,was introduced. This chapter has been almost entirely written by Alberto Foyo, Professor of Ground Engineer-ing at the E. T. S. I. C. C. P, Polytechnic Cantabria University.Other sources of inspiration in the composition of the handbook were "Micro Hydropower Source by R.Inversin (NRCA 1986), the volume 4 of the "Engineering Guidelines for Planning and Designing HydroelectricDevelopments (ASCE 1990) and "Hydraulic Engineering Systems (N.C.Hwang and C.E. Hita 1987). Theauthorisation by Inversin to reproduce the Appendix X of his book, dealing with the physical description of thewaterhammer phenomena, is much appreciated. We appreciate the spirit of collaboration of the authors ofhydraulic papers; all of them gave their authorisation to reproduce their papers-We should thank Eric Wilson for his efforts to correct the English text, both for style and content. If any errorsare still present it will be unquestionably the fault of the author.And finally our acknowledgement to President Henri Baguenier, who solicited the support of the DG XVII tocommission the writing of the handbook and to facilitate the relationship with the ALTENER Committee.Celso PencheJune 1988.Manual de pequea hidrulica xTabIe of Contents1.Introduction1.0 A free fuel resource potentially everlasting. ................................................................................................ 151.1 Definition of small hydropower .................................................................................................................... 161.2 Site configurations ...................................................................................................................................... 161.2.1 Run-of-river schemes .......................................................................................................................... 171.2.2 Schemes with the powerhouse at the base of a dam.......................................................................... 191.2.3 Schemes integrated with an irrigation canal ........................................................................................ 201.2.4 Schemes integrated in a water abstraction system ............................................................................. 211.3 Planning a small hydropower scheme ......................................................................................................... 222. FundamentaIs of HydrauIic Engineering2.0 Introduction.................................................................................................................................................. 252.1 Water flow in pipes ...................................................................................................................................... 252.1.1 Los of head due to friction ................................................................................................................... 272.1.2 Loss of head due to turbulence ........................................................................................................... 362.1.2.1 Trash rack (or screen) losses ......................................................................................................... 362.1.2.2 Loss of head by sudden contraction or expansion ......................................................................... 372.1.2.3 Loss of head in bends .................................................................................................................... 392.1.2.4 Loss of head through valves .......................................................................................................... 402.1.3 Transient flow ...................................................................................................................................... 412.2 Water flow in open channels ....................................................................................................................... 442.2.1 Clasification of open channel flows ..................................................................................................... 442.3.2 Uniform flow in open channels ........................................................................................................... 452.2.3 Principles of energy in open channel flows ......................................................................................... 462.3 Computer programs .................................................................................................................................... 51Bibliography....................................................................................................................................................... 533 The water resource and its potentiaI3.0 Introduction............................................................................................................... ................................... 553.2 Evaluating streamflows by discharge measurements .................................................................................. 573.2.1 Velocity-area method................................................................................................................................ 573.2.1.1 Measuring the cross-sectional area................................................................................................ 593.2.1.2 Measuring the velocity.................................................................................................................... 593.2.3 Weir method ........................................................................................................................................ 643.2.4 Slope-area method .............................................................................................................................. 653.3 Streamflow characteristics........................................................................................................................... 663.3.1 Hydrograph ......................................................................................................................................... 663.3.2 Flow Duration Curves (FDC) ............................................................................................................... 663.3.3 Standardised FDC curves ................................................................................................................... 683.3.4 Evaluating streamflows at ungauged sites .......................................................................................... 683.3.5 European Atlas of Small Scale Hydropower Resources ...................................................................... 703.3.6 FDC's for particular months or other periods ....................................................................................... 723.3.7 Water pressure or 'head' ..................................................................................................................... 723.3.7.1 Measurement of gross head........................................................................................................... 723.3.7.2 Estimation of net head.................................................................................................................... 723.4 Residual, reserved or compensation flow.................................................................................................... 743.5 Estimation of plant capacity and energy output ........................................................................................... 753.5.1 How the head varies with the flow and its influence on the turbine capacity ....................................... 783.5.2 Another methodology to compute power and annual energy output ................................................... 793.5.3 Peaking operation ............................................................................................................................... 803.6 Firm energy ................................................................................................................................................. 81Bibliography ............................................................................................................................................... 83xi4. Site evaIuation methodoIogies4.0 Introduction. ................................................................................................................................................. 854.1 Cartography................................................................................................................................................. 854.2 Geotechnical studies ................................................................................................................................... 864.2.1 Methodologies to be used ................................................................................................................... 87Photogeology. ........................................................................................................................................ 87Geomorphologic maps ........................................................................................................................... 87Laboratory analysis ................................................................................................................................ 87Geophysical studies ............................................................................................................................... 87Structural geological analysis ................................................................................................................. 87Direct investigations. Borehole drilling.................................................................................................... 874.2.2 Methodologies. The study of a practical case. .................................................................................... 884.2.2.1 The weir ......................................................................................................................................... 884.2.2.2 The open channel ........................................................................................................................... 904.2.2.3 The channel in tunnel. .................................................................................................................... 924.2.2.4 The powerhouse............................................................................................................................. 944.3 Learning from failures.................................................................................................................................. 96Ruahihi canal failure (New Zealand) ...................................................................................................... 97La Marea canal failure (Spain) ............................................................................................................... 99Seepage under a weir (France) ............................................................................................................ 100The hydraulic canal in a low-head 2 MW scheme ................................................................................ 1015. HydrauIic structures5.1 Structures for storage and water intake..................................................................................................... 1035.1.1 Dams ................................................................................................................................................. 1035.1.2 Weirs ................................................................................................................................................. 1035.1.2.1 Devices to raise the water level. ................................................................................................... 1055.1.3 Spillways ........................................................................................................................................... 1085.1.4 Energy dissipators .............................................................................................................................. 1115.1.5 Low level outlets ................................................................................................................................. 1115.1.6 River diversion during construction .................................................................................................. 1115.2 Waterways .................................................................................................................................................. 1125.2.1 Intake structures ................................................................................................................................. 1125.2.1.1 Water intake types ......................................................................................................................... 1135.2.1.2 Intake location ............................................................................................................................... 1155.2.2 Power intake....................................................................................................................................... 1165.2.3 Mechanical equipment ....................................................................................................................... 1195.2.3.1 Debris management in intakes ...................................................................................................... 1195.2.3.2 Sediment management in intakes ................................................................................................ 1245.2.3.3 Gates and valves.......................................................................................................................... 1265.2.4 Open channels .................................................................................................................................. 1295.2.4.1 Design and dimensioning ............................................................................................................. 1295.2.4.2 Circumventing obstacles .............................................................................................................. 1375.2.5 Penstocks......................................................................................................................................... 1375.2.5.1 Arrangement and material selection for penstocks. ...................................................................... 1375.2.5.2 Hydraulic design and structural requirements .............................................................................. 141Penstock diameter. ............................................................................................................................... 141Wall thickness ...................................................................................................................................... 1445.2.5.3 Saddles, supporting blocks and expansion joints ......................................................................... 1515.2.6Tailraces ............................................................................................................................................ 151Manual de pequea hidrulica xii6 EIectromechanicaI equipment6.0 Powerhouse .............................................................................................................................................. 1536.1 Hydraulic turbines...................................................................................................................................... 1556.1.1 Classification criteria ......................................................................................................................... 1576.1.1.1 On the basis of the flow regime in the turbine .............................................................................. 1576.1.1.1.1 Impulse turbines ...................................................................................................................... 157Pelton turbines ..................................................................................................................................... 157Turgo turbines ...................................................................................................................................... 158Cross-flow turbines .............................................................................................................................. 1586.1.1.1.2 Reaction turbines .................................................................................................................... 159Francis turbines.................................................................................................................................... 163Kaplan and propeller turbines .............................................................................................................. 163Pumps working as turbines .................................................................................................................. 1636.1.1.2 On the basis of the specific speed................................................................................................ 1646.1.2 Turbine selection criteria ................................................................................................................... 1706.1.3 Turbine efficiency .............................................................................................................................. 1776.1.4 Turbine performance characteristics ................................................................................................. 1796.1.5 Turbine performance under new site conditions ................................................................................ 1806.2 Speed increasers ...................................................................................................................................... 1836.2.1 Speed increaser types....................................................................................................................... 183Parallel-shaft ........................................................................................................................................ 183Bevel gears: ......................................................................................................................................... 183Epicycloidal: ......................................................................................................................................... 1846.2.2 Speed increaser design..................................................................................................................... 1846.2.3 Speed increaser maintenance........................................................................................................... 1856.3 Generators ................................................................................................................................................ 1856.3.1 Generator configurations ................................................................................................................... 1876.3.2 Exciters ............................................................................................................................................. 1876.3.3 Voltage regulation and synchronisation ............................................................................................ 1886.3.3.1 Asynchronous generators............................................................................................................ 1886.3.3.2 Synchronous generators ............................................................................................................. 1886.4 Turbine control .......................................................................................................................................... 1896.4.1 Speed Governors .............................................................................................................................. 1896.5 Switchgear equipment .......................................................................................................................... 1926.6 Automatic control ....................................................................................................................................... 1946.7 Ancillary electrical equipment .................................................................................................................... 1956.7.1 Plant service transformer .................................................................................................................. 1956.7.2 DC control power supply ................................................................................................................... 1956.7.3 Headwater and tailwater recorders.................................................................................................... 1956.7.4 Outdoor substation ............................................................................................................................ 1976.8 Examples................................................................................................................................................... 197Bibliography ........................................................................................................................................... 2007. EnvironmentaI impact and its mitigation7.0 Introduction............................................................................................................... ................................. 2017.1 Burdens and impacts identification ............................................................................................................ 2027.2 Impacts in the construction phase ............................................................................................................. 2037.2.1 Reservoirs ......................................................................................................................................... 2047.2.2 Water intakes, open canals, penstocks, tailraces, etc. ...................................................................... 204xiii7.3 Impacts arising from the operation of the scheme ..................................................................................... 2057.3.1 Sonic impacts .................................................................................................................................... 2057.3.2 Landscape impact ............................................................................................................................. 2067.3.3 Biological impacts.............................................................................................................................. 2147.3.4 Archaeological and cultural objects ................................................................................................... 2327.4 Impacts from transmission lines ................................................................................................................ 2337.4.1 Visual impact ..................................................................................................................................... 2337.4.2 Health impact .................................................................................................................................... 2347.4.3 Birds collisions................................................................................................................................... 2347.5 Conclusions ............................................................................................................................................... 2348 Economic AnaIysis8.0 Introduction................................................................................................................................................ 2378.1 Basic considerations ................................................................................................................................. 2378.2 Financial mathematics ............................................................................................................................... 2408.3 Methods of economic evaluation ............................................................................................................... 2428.3.1 Static methods (which do not take the opportunity cost into consideration) ...................................... 2428.3.2 Dynamic methods.............................................................................................................................. 2438.3.3 Examples .......................................................................................................................................... 2458.4 Financial analysis of some European schemes......................................................................................... 2489. Administrative procedures9.0 Introduction................................................................................................................................................ 2539.1 Economic issues ....................................................................................................................................... 2539.3 How to support renewable energy under deregulation* ............................................................................. 2569.5.1 Set asides ......................................................................................................................................... 2569.2.2 Emission Taxes, Caps and Credits .................................................................................................... 2589.2.3 Green pricing. .................................................................................................................................... 2589.2.4 Imposed tariffs ................................................................................................................................... 2599.2.5. Miscellaneous................................................................................................................................... 2599.3 Technical aspects ...................................................................................................................................... 2609.4 Procedural issues ...................................................................................................................................... 2619.5 Environmental constraints ......................................................................................................................... 263GLOSSARY .................................................................................................................................................... 265Manual de pequea hidrulica xiv1.0 A free fuel resource potentially everlasting.Following the United Nations Conference in Rio on the Environment andDevelopment, the European Union committed itself to stabilising its carbon dioxide(CO2) emissions, primarily responsible for the greenhouse effect, at 1990 levelsby the year 2000.Clearly Europe will not be able to achieve this ambitious targetwithout considerable promotion of energy efficiency and a major increase in thedevelopment of renewable energy sources. The European Commission is wellaware of this fact and one of the ALTENER objectives is to double, from now tothe year 2010, the electricity generated by renewable resources.From the beginning of electricity production hydropower has been, and still istoday, the first renewable source used to generate electricity. Nowadayshydropower electricity in the European Union both large and small scale -represents according to the White Paper, 13% of the total electricity generated,so reducing the CO2 emissions by more than 67 million tons a year. But whereasthe conventional hydro requires the flooding of large areas of land, with consequentserious environmental and social costs, the properly designed small hydro schemes(less than 10 MW installed capacity) are easily integrated into local ecosystems.Small hydro is the largest contributor of electricity from renewable energy sources,both at European and world level. At world level, it is estimated there is an installedcapacity of 47.000 MW, with a potential technical and economical close to180.000 MW. At European level, the installed capacity is about 9.500 MW, andthe EC objective for the year 2010 is to reach 14.000 MW..The large majority of small hydro plants are run-of-river schemes, meaningsimply that the turbine generates when the water is available and provided bythe river. When the river dries up and the flow falls below some predeterminedamount, the generation ceases. This means, of course, that small independentschemes may not always be able to supply energy, unless they are so sized thatthere is always enough water.This problem can be overcome in two ways. The first is by using any existinglakes or reservoir storage upstream. The second is by interconnecting the plantwith the electricity supplier's network. This has the advantage of allowing automaticcontrol and governing of the frequency of the electricity but the disadvantage ofhaving to sell the energy to the utility company at its price -the 'buy-back' rate-,which can be too low. In recent years, in most of the member states, the rate hasbeen fixed by national governments, who, conscious of the environmental benefitsof renewables, have been making provision for increasing the "buy-back rates.Portugal, Spain and Germany have proved that reasonable "buy-back rates areessential to increase the generation of electricity with renewables. With the announced deregulation of the European electricity market, the smallproducers will be in a weak position to negotiate the purchase of their electricityby the utilities. But national governments cannot dispense with renewables intheir effort to curb CO2 emissions, and must found ways, perhaps similar to theBritish NFFO to support generation by renewables.1. Introduction16 Layman`s Guidebook1.1 Definition of small hydropowerThere is no consensus in EU member states on the definition of small hydropower:Some countries like Portugal, Spain, Ireland, and now, Greece and Belgium, accept10 MW as the upper limit for installed capacity. In Italy the limit is fixed at 3 MW(plants with larger installed power should sell their electricity at lower prices); inFrance the limit was established at 8 MW and UK favour 5 MW. Hereunder will beconsidered as small any scheme with an installed capacity of 10 MW or less. Thisfigure is adopted by five member states, ESHA, the European Commission andUNIPEDE (International Union of Producers and Distributors of Electricity).1.2 Site configurationsThe objective of a hydro power scheme is to convert the potential energy of amass of water, flowing in a stream with a certain fall (termed the "head), intoelectric energy at the lower end of the scheme, where the powerhouse is located.The power of the scheme is proportional to the flow and to the head.According to the head, schemes can be classified in three categories: High head: 100-m and above Medium head: 30 - 100 m Low head: 2 - 30 m17 Chapter 1. IntroductionThese ranges are are not rigid but are merely means of categorising sites.Schemes can also be defined as Run-of-river schemes Schemes with the powerhouse located at the base of a dam Schemes integrated on an canal or in a water supply pipe1.2.1 Run-of-river schemesIn the run-of-river schemes the turbine generates electricity as and when thewater is available and provided by the river. When the river dries up and the flowfalls below some predetermined amount the minimum technical flow of the turbineequipping the plant -, generation ceases.Medium and high head schemes use weirs to divert water to the intake, fromwhere it is conveyed to the turbines, via a pressure pipe or penstock. Penstocks areexpensive and consequently this design is usually uneconomic. An alternative (figure1.1) is to convey the water by a low-slope canal, running alongside the river, to thepressure intake or forebay, and then in a short penstock to the turbines. If thetopography and morphology of the terrain does not permit the easy layout of a canal,a low-pressure pipe, with larger latitude in slopes, can be an economical option. Atthe outlet of the turbines, the water is discharged to the river, via the tailrace.Occasionally a small reservoir, storing enough water to operate only on peakhours, when "buy-back rates are higher, can be created by the weir, or a similarlysized pond can be built in the forebay, using the possibilities provided by geotex-tiles.Low head schemes are typically built in river valleys. Two technological optionscan be selected. Either the water is diverted to a power intake with a short penstock(figure 1.2), as in the high head schemes, or the head is created by a small dam,provided with sector gates and an integrated intake (figure 1.3), powerhouse and19 Chapter 1. Introductionfish ladder.1.2.2 Schemes with the powerhouse at the base of a damA small hydropower scheme cannot afford a large reservoir to operate the plantwhen it is most convenient; the cost of a relatively large dam and its hydraulicappurtenances would be too high to make it economically viable. But if the reservoirhas already been built for other purposes flood control, irrigation network, waterabstraction for a big city, recreation area, etc, - it may be possible to generateelectricity using the discharge compatible with its fundamental usage or theecological flow of the reservoir.The main question is how to link headwater and tailwater by a waterway and how tofit the turbine in this waterway. If the dam already has a bottom outlet, as in figure1.4, the solution is clear. Otherwise, provided the dam is not too high, a siphonintake can be installed. Integral siphon intakes (figure 1,5) provide an elegant solutionin schemes with heads up to 10 meters and for units of no more than 1.000 kW,although there are examples of siphon intakes with an installed power up to 11 MW(Sweden) and heads up to 30,5 meters (USA). The turbine can be located either on20 Layman`s Guidebooktop of the dam or on the downstream side. The unit can be delivered pre-packagedto the works, and installed without major modifications of the dam.1.2.3 Schemes integrated with an irrigation canalTwo types of schemes can be designed to exploit irrigation canal falls: The canal is enlarged to the required extent, to accommodate the intake, thepower station, the tailrace and the lateral bypass. Figure 1.6 shows a schemeof this kind, with a submerged powerhouse equipped with a right angle driveKaplan turbine. To ensure the water supply for irrigation, the scheme shouldinclude a lateral bypass, as in the figure, in case of shutdown of the turbine.This kind of scheme must be designed at the same time as the canal, becausethe widening of the canal in full operation is an expensive option. If the canal already exists, a scheme like the one shown in figure 1.7 is a suitableoption. The canal should be slightly enlarged to include the intake and the21 Chapter 1. Introductionspillway. To reduce the with of the intake to a minimum, an elongated spillwayshould be installed. From the intake, a penstock running along the canal bringsthe water under pressure to the turbine. The water, once through the turbine, isreturned to the river via a short tailrace. As generally, fish are not present incanals, fishpasses are unnecessary.1.2.4 Schemes integrated in a water abstraction systemThe drinking water is supplied to a city by conveying the water from a headwaterreservoir via a pressure pipe. Usually in this type of installation, the dissipation ofenergy at the lower end of the pipe at the entrance to the Water Treatment Plant isachieved through the use of special valves. The fitting of a turbine at the end of thepipe, to convert this otherwise lost energy to electricity, is an attractive option,provided that waterhammer, that would endanger the pipe, is avoided.22 Layman`s GuidebookWaterhammer overpressures are especially critical when the turbine is fitted onan old pressure pipe.To ensure the water supply at all times, a system of bypass valves should beinstalled. In some water supply systems the turbine discharges to an open airpound. The control system maintains automatically, and unattended, the level ofthe pound. In case mechanical shutdown or load rejection closes the turbine, thevalve of the main bypass can also maintain the level of the pound automatically.Occasionally if the main bypass valve is out-of-operation and overpressure occurs,an ancillary bypass valve is rapidly opened by a counterweight and is subsequentlyclosed. All the closing and opening operations of these valves however must beslow enough to keep pressure variations within acceptable limits.The control system has to be more complex in those systems where the turbineoutlet is subjecto the counter-pressure of the network, as is shown in figure 1.8.1.3 Planning a small hydropower schemeThe definitive project of a scheme comes as the result of a complex and iterativeprocess, where, always having in view the environmental impact, the differenttechnological options are compared from an economic viewpoint.Although is not easy to provide a detailed guide on how to evaluate a scheme, itis possible to describe the fundamental steps to be followed, before deciding ifone should proceed to a detailed feasibility study or not. A list of the studies thatshould be undertaken: Topography and geomorphology of the site. Evaluation of the water resource and its generating potential Site selection and basic layout Hydraulic turbines and generators and their control Environmental impact assessment and mitigation measures Economic evaluation of the project and financing potential Institutional framework and administrative procedures to attain the authorisationsThe water flowing along natural and man-made canals, conducted by low andhigh-pressure pipes, spilling over weir crests, and moving the turbines, involvesthe application of fundamental engineering principles in fluid mechanics. In Chapter2 those principles are reviewed together with the shortcuts arising from theexperience accumulated from centuries of hydraulic systems construction.To decide if a scheme will be viable it is necessary to begin by evaluating thewater resource existing at the site. The energy potential of the scheme isproportional to the product of the flow and the head. The gross head can usuallybe considered as constant, but the flow varies over the year. To select the mostappropriate hydraulic equipment, estimate its potential and calculate the annualenergy output, a flow-duration curve is most useful. A single measurement ofinstantaneous flow in a stream has little value. Measuring the gross head requiresa straightforward survey. The results obtained by using a surveyor's level and23 Chapter 1. Introductionstaff is accurate enough, but the recent advances in electronic surveying equipmentmake the topographic work much simpler and faster. To produce a flow-durationcurve on a gauged site has no mystery; to produce such a curve at an ungaugedsite requires a deeper knowledge of the hydrology. In Chapter 3 various methodsfor measuring the quantity of water flowing in a stream are analysed and hydrologicmodels to calculate the flow regime at ungauged sites are discussed. . Fortunately,new computer package programs will ease that task and in Chapter 3 one ofthese programs (HydrA) is presented.Chapter 4 presents the techniques orto-photography, RES, GIS, geomorphology,geotectonics, etc used nowadays for site evaluation, preventing potential futurefailures. Some of these failures are analysed and conclusions about how theymight have been avoided are explained.In Chapter 5 the basic layouts are developed and the hydraulic structures, suchas weirs, canals, spillways, intakes and penstocks, studied in detail.Chapter 6 deals with the electromechanical equipment used to convert the potentialenergy of the mass of water to electricity. Turbines themselves are not studied indetail, but attention is focused on turbine configurations, specifically for low headschemes, and on the process of turbine selection, with emphasis on specificspeed criteria. Since small hydro schemes are nowadays unattended, the controlsystems, based on personal computers, are reviewed.Environmental Impact Assessment is required to attain authorisation to use thewater. Although several recent studies have shown that small hydropower havingno emissions nor producing toxic wastes, does not contribute to climatic change,designers should implement all necessary measures to mitigate local ecologicalimpacts. Chapter 7 analyses those impacts and mitigating measures.Chapter 8 reviews techniques, which can be applied in the economical evaluationof a scheme. Various methodologies of economic analyses are described andillustrated with tables showing the cash flows generated by the schemes.Institutional frameworks and administrative procedures in various UE member-states are reviewed. Unfortunately the recent electricity industry's deregulationmake itimpossible to detail a situation that was fairly clear few years ago, whenESHA produced in December 1994 and under contract with the E.C., DirectorateGeneral for Energy, DGXVII, the report " Small Hydropower. General Frameworkfor Legislation and Authorisation Procedures in the European Union24 Layman`s Guidebook2.0 IntroductionHydraulic engineering is based on the principles of fluid mechanics, althoughmany empirical relationships are applied to achieve practical engineering solutions.Until now there does not exist, and probably never will, a general methodology forthe mathematical analysis of the movement of fluids. Based on the large amountof accumulated experience, certainly there are particular solutions to specificproblems. Experience that goes back as far as 2500 years ago, when a massiveirrigation system, that is still operative, was built in Siechuan, China, and to theRoman Empire's builders of the aqueducts.2.1 Water flow in pipesThe energy in the water flowing in a closed conduit of circular cross section,under a certain pressure, is given by Bernoulli's equation:(2.1)Where H1 is the total energy, h1 is the elevation head, P1 the pressure, g thespecific weight of water, V1 the velocity of the water and g the gravitationalacceleration. The total energy at point 1 is then the algebraic sum of the potentialenergy h1, the pressure energy P1/g , and the kinetic energy V12/2g.If water is allowed to flow very slowly in a long, straight, glass pipe of small bore intowhich a fine stream of coloured water is introduced at the entrance to the pipe, thecoloured water appeared as a straight line all along the pipe, indicating laminar flow.The water flows in laminae, like concentric thin walled concentric pipes. The outervirtual pipe adheres to the wall of the real pipe, while each of the inner ones movesat a slightly higher speed, which reaches a maximum value near the centre of thepipe. The velocity distribution has the form of a paraboloid of revolution and theaverage velocity (figure 2.1) is 50% of the maximum centre line velocity.If the flow rate is gradually increased, a moment is reached when the thread ofcolour suddenly breaks up and mixes with the surrounding water. The particlesclose to the wall mix up with the ones in the midstream, moving at a higher speed,and slow them. At that moment the flow becomes turbulent, and the velocitydistribution curve is much flatter. Osborne Reynolds, near the end of last century,performing this carefully prepared experiment found that the transition from lami-nar flow to turbulent flow depends, not only on the velocity, but also on the pipediameter and the viscosity of the fluid, and can be described by the ratio of theinertia force to the viscous force, This ratio, known nowadays as the Reynoldsnumber, can be expressed, in the case of a circular pipe, by the equation:N D JR =

(2.2)where D (m) is the pipe diameter, V is the average water velocity (m/s), and n isthe kinematic viscosity of the fluid (m2/s). .2. Fundamentals of Hydraulic EngineeringgJ Ph H221 11 1 + + =C26 Layman`s GuidebookExperimentally has been found that for flows in circular pipes the critical Reynoldsnumber is about 2000. In fact this transition does not always happen at exactlyNR=2000 but varies with the experimental conditions, Therefore there is morethan a transition point, what exists is a transition range.ExampIe 2.1A 60-mm diameter circuIar pipe carries water at 20C. CaIcuIate the IargestfIow-rate for which Iaminar fIow can be expectedThe kinematic viscosity of water at 20C is u = 1 x 10-6 m2/s.Accepting a conservative value for NR = 2000V=2000 / (106x0,06) = 0.033 m/sQ = AV = /4x 0,062 x 0,033 = 3,73 x 10-4 m3/s = 0,373 l/sWater loses energy as it flows through a pipe, fundamentally due to:1. friction against the pipe wall2. viscous dissipation as a consequence of the internal friction of flowThe friction against the pipe wall depends on the wall material roughness and thevelocity gradient nearby the wall. Velocity gradient, as can be seen in figure 2.1,is higher in turbulent flow than in laminar flow. Therefore as the Reynolds numberincreases, the friction loss will also increase. At the same time, at higher turbulencethere is a more intensive particle mixing action, and hence a higher viscousdissipation. Consequently the energy losses in pipe flow increase with the Reynoldsnumber and with the wall pipe roughness.It can be verified that for water flowing between two sections, a certain amount ofenergy hf is lostJg Ph Jg Ph hf1211 22222 2+ + = + + +

(2.3)due mainly to the friction of the water against the pipe wall, and secondarily to the27Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic Engineeringinternal friction of the flow. In figure 2.2, HGL is the hydraulic gradient line andEGL the energy gradient line. If the pipe cross section is constant, V1 = V2 andboth lines will be parallel. The question is, how hf can be evaluated?2.1.1 Los of head due to frictionDarcy and Weisbach, applying the principle of conservation of mass to a controlvolume a certain volume of fluid in a pipe, between two sections perpendicularto its axis derived the following equation, valid for incompressible and steadyflows, travelling through pipes:h f LD Jgf = FHG IKJ 22 (2.4)where f, friction factor, is a dimensionless number, L the length of pipe in m, D thepipe diameter in m, V the average velocity in m/s and g the gravitationalacceleration (9.81 m/s2).In a laminar flow f can be calculated directly by the equationfJD NR= =64 64

(2.6)ggg28 Layman`s Guidebookshowing that the specific head loss, in laminar flow, is proportional to V andinversely proportional to D2.When the flow is practically turbulent (NR>>2000), the friction factor become lessdependent on the Reynolds number and more dependent on the relative roughnessheight e/D, where "e represents the average roughness height of irregularitieson the pipe wall and D the pipe diameter. Some values of the roughness height"e, are provided in table 2.1TabIe 2.1 Roughness height "e", for various commerciaI pipesPipe material e(mm)Polyethylene 0,003Fiberglas with epoxy 0,003Seamless commercial steel (new) 0,025Seamless commercial steel (light rust) 0,250Seamless commercial steel (galvanised) 0,150Welded steel 0,600Cast iron (enamel coated) 0,120Asbestos cement 0,025Wood stave 0,600Concrete (steel forms, with smooth joints) 0,180It is well known that, even in turbulent flows, immediately next to the wall pipe thereexists a very thin layer of flow referred to as the laminar sublayer. When NR increases,the sublayer's thickness diminishes. Whenever the roughness height "e is resolutelylower than the sublayer thickness the pipe is considered hydraulically smoothIn a hydraulically smooth pipe flow the friction factor f is not affected by the surfaceroughness of the pipe, and for this case Von Karman, developed the followingequation for the friction factor f122 51 f N fR= FHG IKJlog. (2.7)At high Reynolds numbers, the sublayer thickness becomes very small and thefriction factor f becomes independent of NR and depends only on the relativeroughness height. In this case the pipe is a hydraulically rough pipe, and VonKarman found that the friction factor f12 37f De= FHG IKJlog . (2.8)In between these two extreme cases, the pipe behaves neither completely smooth norcompletely rough. Colebrook and White devised the following equation for this case:1237 2 51feDN fR= +FHGG IKJJlog. .(2.9)29Chapter

from equation 2.9 = +FHG IKJ237 251log. . e DNRAs the variable is on both sides of the equation an iterative calculation is needed.We use an Excel97 spreadsheet (figure 2.4) to do it. In figure 2.5 there is a list ofthe formulae that should be introduced on each cell. Once introduced the formulaeExample 2.4 - Steel pipeQ 1.2 m3/s f alpha alphaD 900 mm 0.025 6.32455532 7.43162852V 1.8863 m/s 7.43162852 7.42203156L 500 m 7.42203156 7.42211430Nr 1,300,000 7.42211430 7.42211359e 0.6 7.42211359 7.42211359e/D 6.6667E-04 7.42211359 7.42211359f 0.0182un 1.31E-06hf 1.8289 mfigure 2.431Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic Engineeringand the data, the sheet should look as in figure 2.4. In this case we guessed avalue of 0,025 for f, equivalent to a=6.3245. In the spreadsheet it can be seenhow the value of alpha is converging to the final value of a=7.4221136, thatautomatically gives the final value for f = 0.0182 and a head loss hf.=1.829 m.In Internet there are two home pages, one corresponding to the PENNSTATEUniversity, Department of Mechanical Engineering, and the other AeMESDepartment, University of Florida, each having an online computer program tocalculate the friction factor f, by introducing the Reynolds number and theRoughness parameter. It is much faster than the two above-mentioned methodsB3 q G6 -2*LOG($C$9/3.72.51/$C$7*F6)C3 1.2 B7 NrD3 m3/s C7 1.3E06E3 I F7 G6F3 alpha G7 -2*LOG($C$9/3.72.51/$C$7*F7)G3 alpha B8 eB4 D C8 0.6C4 900 F8 G7D4 mm G8 -2*LOG($C$9/3.72.51/$C$7*F8)E4 0.025 B9 e/DF4 1/SQRT(E4) C9 C8/C4G4 -2*LOG($C$9/3.72.51/$C$7*F4) F9 G8B5 V G9 -2*LOG($C$9/3.72.51/$C$7*F9)C5 4*C3/(C4/1000)`2/PI B10 ID5 m/s C10 1/G9`2F5 G4 B11 nuG5 -2*LOG($C$9/3.72.51/$C$7*F5) C11 1.31*10`-6B6 L B12 hIC6 500 C12 C10*C6/C4*1000*C5`2/(2*9.81)D6 m D12 mF6 G5figure 2.532 Layman`s Guidebookand more precise than the Moody Chart. The Internet addresses are, respectivelyhttp://viminaI.me.psu.edu/~cimbaIa/Courses/ME033/me033.htmhttp://grumpy.aero.ufI.edu/gasdynamics/coIebrook.htmApplying both online computer programs to the data of example 2.2 the answer wasrespectively f=0.01787 and f=0.01823, both complete up to 10 decimals. Observethat the second value is practically identical to the one attained with the spreadsheet.The formula (2.9) can be used to solve almost any kind of problem with flows inclose pipes. For example, if you want to know what is the maximum water velocityflowing in a pipe of diameter D and length L, without surpassing a friction headlosshf you only need to use an independent variable m = 12 2f NR (2.10)Substituting NR by its value in (2.2) and f by its value in (2.4) becomes

log. .(2.12)An equation that makes it possible to plot the NR evolution with m for differentvalues of e/D, as shown in figure 2.6, a variation of the Moody Chart where NRcan be estimated directly.ExampIe 2.3Estimate the fIowrate of water at 10C that wiII cause a friction headIossof 2m per km in a weIded steeI pipe, 1.5 m in diameter.Substitute values in equation (2.12), with e/D=0.6/1500 = 4x104,after computing m . =

=

981 15 21000 131 10 386 1032 12 10. .. .NR =

+

FHG IKJ=

2 2 386 10 4 1037 2 512 386 10 219 1010 410 6. log. .. .J ND QR= =

= = 219 13115 1913 338. .. . ; . m/ s m / s3Also based on the Colebrook-White equation there exists some other nomographs,to compute the friction headloss on a pipe, given a certain flow and a certain pipe33Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic Engineeringdiameter, with a certain roughness coefficient such as the one shown in the nextpage and published by courtesy of Hydraulic Research, Wallingford U.K..EmpiricaI formuIaeOver the years many empirical formulae, based on accumulated experience, havebeen developed. They are, in general, not based on sound physical principlesand even, occasionally, lack dimensional coherence, but are intuitively based onthe belief that the friction on a closed full pipe is:1. Independent of the water pressure2. Linearly proportional to its length3. Inversely proportional to a certain power of its diameter4. Proportional to a certain exponent of the water velocity5. In turbulent flows it is influenced by the wall roughnessOne of these formulae, widely used to estimate the flow in open channels, butalso applicable to closed pipes, is that developed by ManningQn A SP= 1 5 3 1 22 3/ // (2.13)Where n is the Manning roughness coefficient, P is the wetted perimeter (m), A iscross-sectional area of the pipe (m2) and S is the hydraulic gradient or headlossby linear meter.Applying the above formulae to a full closed circular cross section pipe:S n QD= 10 29 2 25 333.. (2.14)In Table 2.2 the Manning coefficient n for several commercial pipes:m34 Layman`s Guidebook35Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic EngineeringTabIe 2.2 Manning coefficient n for severaI commerciaI pipesKind of pipe nWelded steel 0.012Polyethylene (PE) 0.009PVC 0.009Asbestos cement 0.011Ductile iron 0.015Cast iron 0.014Wood-stave (new) 0.012Concrete (steel forms smooth finish) 0.014In example 2.4 and more specifically in example 2.5 the results attained applyingthe Colebrook-White equation and the Manning formulae can be compared.ExampIe 2.4Using the parameters in exampIe 2.2 compute the friction headIossappIying the Manning formuIaeAccepting n=0.012 for welded steel pipehLf=

=10 29 0 012 120 9 0 003742 25 333. . .. ..Whereby for L=500 m, hf =1.87 m, slightly inferior to the value estimated withthe Moody chart and slightly higher than the value estimated with thespreadsheet.ExampIe 2.5Compute, using the CoIebrook equation and the Manning formuIae, thefriction headIoss on a weIded pipe 500 m Iong, of respectiveIy 500 mm,800 mm, 1200 mm, and 1500 mm diameter, under a 4 m/s average fIowveIocity.D (mm) 500 800 1200 1500Q(m*3*/s) 0.785 2.011 4.524 7.069V (m/s) 4 4 4 4L (m) 500 500 500 500Applying Colebrook-Whitee (mm) 0.6 0.6 0.6 0.6hf (m) 17.23 9.53 5.73 4.35Applying Manningn 0.012 0.012 0.012 0.012hf (m) 18.40 9.85 5.73 4.26It can be observed that the solutions provided by the Manning formula doesn'tdiffer much from those offered by the Colebrook equation, except in the smaller36 Layman`s Guidebookdiameters, where the head loss provided by Manning is higher than that providedby Colebrook.In North America for pipes larger than 5 cm diameter and flow velocities under 3m/s the Hazen-Williams formulae is used:h LD JCf = FHG IKJ6871 1651 85...(2.15)where V is the flow velocity (m/s), D the diameter (m), L the pipe length (m) and Cthe Hazen-Williams coefficient such as shown in Table 2.3TabIe 2.3 Hazen-WiIIiams coefficientsPipe type CAsbestos cement 140Cast ironNew 13010 years 107 11320 years 89 10030 years 75 90ConcreteCast on site steel forms 140Cast on site wood forms 120Centrifugal cast 135SteelBrush tar and asphalt 150New uncoated 150Riveted 110Wood-stave (new) 120Plastic pipes 135 - 1402.1.2 Loss of head due to turbulenceWater flowing through a pipe system, with entrances, bends, sudden contractionand enlargements of pipes, racks, valves and other accessories experiences, inaddition to the friction loss, a loss due to the inner viscosity. This loss also dependsof the velocity and is expressed by an experimental coefficient K multiplying thekinetic energy v2/2g.2.1.2.1 Trash rack (or screen) lossesA screen or grill is always required at the entrance of a pressure pipe. The flow ofwater through the rack also gives rise to a head loss. Though usually small, it canbe calculated by a formula due to Kirchmer (see figure 2.7)h K tb Jgt t= FHG IKJ FHG IKJ4 3022/sin (2.16)where the parameters are identified in figure 2.7.37Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic EngineeringIf the grill is not perpendicular but makes an angle b with the water flow (b willhave a maximum value of 90 for a grill located in the sidewall of a canal), therewill be an extra head loss, as by the equationh Jg

= 022 sin2.1.2.2 Loss of head by sudden contraction or expansionWhen the pipe has a sudden contraction there is a loss of head due to the increasein velocity of the water flow and to the turbulence.38 Layman`s GuidebookThe flow path is so complex that, at least for the time being, it is impossible toprovide a mathematical analysis of the phenomenon. The head loss is estimatedmultiplying the kinetic energy in the smaller pipe, by a coefficient Kc that varieswith the indes of contraction d/Dh K Jgc c= FHG IKJ222 (2.17)For an index up to d/D = 0.76, Kc approximately follows the formulaKc = 0.42(1- d2/D2) (2.18)Over this ratio, KC is substituted by Kex, the coefficient used for sudden expansion.In sudden expansion the loss of head can be derived from the momentumconsideration, and is given byh J Jg JJ Jg AA Jg dD Jgex =

= FHG IKJ = FHG IKJ = FHG IKJ1 2 22121212212 222122 12 12 12b g(2.19)where V1 is the water velocity in the smaller pipe. Figure 2.8 is a graphicrepresentation of the Kc and Kex values as a function of d/D.The head loss can be reduced by using a gradual pipe transition, known asconfuser for contraction or difuser for expansion.a39Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic EngineeringIn the confuser the head loss varies with the confuser angle as it is shown inTable 2.3 where K'c values are experimental:TabIe 2.3 K'c for different confuser angIesAngle K'c30 0.0245 0.0460 0.07In the diffuser the analysis of the phenomenon is more complex. Figure 2.9 showsthe experimentally found values of Kex for different diffuser angles. The head lossis given by:h K J Jgex ex' '=

12222 (2.20)A submerged pipe discharging in a reservoir is an extreme case of suddenexpansion, where V2, given the size of the reservoir, compared with the pipe, canbe considered as zero, and the loss V12/2g.An entrance to the pipe is, otherwise, an extreme case of sudden contraction.Figure 2.10 shows the value of the Ke coefficient that multiplies the kinetic energyV2/2g in the pipe.2.1.2.3 Loss of head in bendsPipe flow in a bend, experiences an increase of pressure along the outer wall anda decrease of pressure along the inner wall. This pressure unbalance causes asecondary current such as shown in the figure 2.11. Both movements together the longitudinal flow and the secondary current produces a spiral flow that, at alength of around 100 diameters, is dissipated by viscous friction.The head loss produced in these circumstances depends on the radius of thebend and on the diameter of the pipe. Furthermore, in view of the secondarycirculation, there is a secondary friction loss, dependent of the relative roughnesse/d. Figure 2.11, taken from reference 3 gives the value of Kb for different valuesof the ratio R/d and various relative roughness e/d. There is also a generalagreement that, in seamless steel pipes, the loss in bends with angles under 90,is almost proportional to the bend angle.40 Layman`s GuidebookThe problem is extremely complex when successive bends are placed one afteranother, close enough to prevent the flow from becoming stabilised at the end ofthe bend. Fortunately this is hardly ever the case on a small hydro scheme.2.1.2.4 Loss of head through valvesValves or gates are used in small hydro scheme to isolate a component from therest, so they are either entirely closed or entirely open. Flow regulation is assignedto the distributor vanes or to the needle valves of the turbine.The loss of head produced by the water flowing through an open valve dependson the type and manufacture of the valve. Figure 2.12 shows the value of Kv fordifferent kind of valves.41Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic Engineering2.1.3 Transient flowIn steady flows, where discharge is assumed to remain constant with time, theoperating pressure at any point along a penstock is equivalent to the head ofwater above that point. If a sudden change of flow occur, for instance when theplant operator, or the governor system, open or close the gates too rapidly, thesudden change in the water velocity can cause dangerous high and low pressures.This pressure wave is known as waterhammer and its effects can be dramatic:the penstock can burst from overpressure or collapse if the pressures are reducedbelow ambient. Although being transitory the surge pressure induced by thewaterhammer phenomenon can be of a magnitude several times greater than thestatic pressure due to the head. According to Newton's second law of motion, theforce developed in the penstock, by the sudden change in velocity, will beF mdJdt= (2.21)If the velocity of the water column could be reduced to zero the resulting forcewould become infinite. Fortunately this is not possible in practice; a mechanicalvalve requires some time for total closure; the pipe walls are not perfectly rigidand the water column under large pressures is not incompressible.The following description, reproduced with the permission of the author, Allen R,Irvine, from Appendix F of his "Micro-Hydropower Sourcebook, is one of the bestphysical explanations of the phenomenon. Figure 2,13 illustrates how a velocitychange caused by an instantaneous closure of a gate at the end of a pipe createspressure waves travelling within the pipe.Initially, water flows at some velocity V0 as shown in (a). When the gate isclosed, the water flowing within the pipe has a tendency to continue flowingbecause of its momentum. Because it is physically prevented from so doing, itpiles up behind the gate; the kinetic energy of the element of water nearest thegate is converted to pressure energy, which slightly compresses the water andexpands the circumference of the pipe at this point (b). This action is repeated bythe following elements of water (c), and the wave front of increased pressuretravels the length of the pipe until the velocity of the water v0 is destroyed, thewater is compressed, and the pipe is expanded its entire length (d). At this point,the water's kinetic energy has all been converted to strain energy of the water(under increased compression) and strain energy of the pipe (under increasedtension).Because the water in the reservoir remains under normal static pressure but thewater in the pipe is now under a higher pressure, the flow reverses and is forcedback into the reservoir again with velocity V0 (e). As the water under compressionstarts flowing back, the pressure in the pipe is reduced to normal static pressure.A pressure unloading wave then travels down the pipe toward the gate (f) untilall the strain energy is converted back into kinetic energy (g). However, unlikecase (a), the water is now flowing in the opposite direction and because of itsmomentum, the water again tries to maintain this velocity. In so doing, it stretchesthe element of water nearest the gate, reducing the pressure there and contractingthe pipe (h). This happens with successive elements of water and a negative42 Layman`s Guidebookpressure wave propagates back to the reservoir (i) untilthe entire pipe is under compression and water underreduced pressure (j). This negative pressure wave wouldhave the same absolute magnitude as the initial positivepressure wave if it were assumed that friction losses donot exist. The velocity then returns to zero but the lowerpressure in the pipe compared to that in the reservoirforces water to flow back into the pipe (k). The pressuresurge travels back toward the gate (e) until the entire cycleis complete and a second cycle commences (b). Thevelocity with which the pressure front moves is a functionof the speed of sound in water modified by the elasticcharacteristics of the pipe materialIn reality, the penstock pipe is usually inclined but theeffect remains the same, with the surge pressure at eachpoint along the pipe adding to or subtracting from thestatic pressure at that point. Also, the damping effect offriction within the pipe causes the kinetic energy of theflow to dissipate gradually and the amplitude of thepressure oscillations to decrease with time. Although some valves close almost instantaneously,closure usually takes at least several seconds. Still, ifthe valve is closed before the initial pressure surge returnsto the gate end of the pipeline (g), the pressure peak willremain unchanged - all the kinetic energy contained inthe water near the gate will eventually be converted tostrain energy and result in the same peak pressure as ifthe gate were closed instantaneously. However, if thegate has been closed only partially by the time the initialpressure surge returns to the gate (g), not all the kineticenergy will have been converted to strain energy and thepressure peak will be lower. If the gate then continuesclosing, the positive pressure surge, which it would thencreate, will be reduced somewhat by the negativepressure (h) surge which originated when the gateoriginally began closing. Consequently, if the gate opensor closes in more time than that required for the pressuresurge to travel to the reservoir and back to the gate, peaksurge pressures are reduced. This time is called thecritical time, TC, and is equal toTc = 2L /c (2.22)where c is the wave velocity. The wave velocity, or speedof sound, in water is approximately 1420 m/s. However,the wave velocity in a pipe the speed with which thepressure surge travels along the pipe is a function of boththe elastic characteristics of water and the pipe material.An expression for the wave velocity is:43Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic Engineeringc KKDEt=

+

1013(2.23)where K = bulk modulus of water 2.2x109 N/m2D = internal pipe diameter (m)E = modulus of elasticity of pipe material (N/m2)t = wall thickness (mm)If the valve is already closed, when the pressure wave is on its way back, (timelower than the critical one T), all the kinetic energy of the water will be convertedon an overpressure, and its value in meters of water column, will beP cgJ=

(2.24)where DV is the change of water velocity.However, if t is greater than Tc, then the pressure wave reaches the valve beforethe valve is completely closed, and the overpressure will not develop fully, becausethe reflected negative wave arriving at the valve will compensate for the pressurerise. In this case the maximum overpressure may be calculated by the Allieviformula:

002(2.26)where r = water density (kg/m3)V0 = water velocity (m/s)L = total pipe length (m)P0 = static pressure (m column of water)t = closure time (s)The total pressure experienced by the penstock will be P = P0 + DP .In chapter 6, several examples related to penstock design will clarify the abovephysical concepts.For a more rigorous approach it would be necessary to take into considerationnot only the fluid and pipe material elasticity, as above, but also the hydrauliclosses. The mathematical approach is rather cumbersome and requires the useof computers. For interested readers Chaudry, Fox and Parmakian, among others,give calculation m)ethods, together with some worked examples.44 Layman`s Guidebooktime, and is said to be varied when the discharge and the water depth changealong its length. The flow could be varied steady if the unidimensional approachcan be applied and varied unsteady if not. Figure 2.15 represents different kind offlows: steady, varied steady (GV), and varied unsteady (RV)As in the fully closed pipe flows, channel flows also follow the Bernoulli equationand consequently formula (2.1) is valid. The amount of energy loss when waterflows from section 1 to section 2 is indicated by hL.2.2 Water flow in open channelsContrary to what happen in closed pipes, where the water fills the entire pipe, inan open canal there is always a free surface. Normally, the free water surface issubject to the atmospheric pressure, commonly referred to as the zero pressurereference, and usually considered as constant along the full length of the canal.In a way this fact, by dropping the pressure term, facilitates the analysis, but atthe same time introduces a new dilemma, because a priori the shape of the surfaceis unknown. The depth of water changes with the flow conditions, and in unsteadyflows its estimation is a part of the problem.Any kind of canal, even a straight one, has a three-dimensional distribution of velocities.A well-established principle in fluid mechanics is that any particle in contact with asolid stationary border has a zero velocity. Figure 2.14 illustrates the iso-velocity linesin channels of different profile. The mathematical approach is based on the theory ofthe boundary layer; the engineering approach is to deal with the average velocity V.2.2.1 Clasification of open channel flowsUnder the time criterion achannel flow is considered steady when the dischargeand the water depth at any section of the stretch does not change with time. andunsteady when one or both of them changes with time.Based on the space criterion, an open channel flow is said to be uniform if thedischarge and the water depth at any section of the stretch do not change with45Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic Engineering2.3.2 Uniform flow in open channelsBy definition a flow is considered uniform when1. The water depth, water area, and the velocity in every cross section of thechannel are constant.2. The energy gradient line, the free surface line and the bottom channel line areparallel to each other.Based on these concepts Chezy found thatJ C R Sh e= (2.27)where: C = Chezy's resistance factorRh = Hydraulic radius of the channel cross-sectionSe = Channel bottom line slopeMany attempts had been made to determine the value of C. Manning, using theresults of his own experiments and those of others, derived the following empiricalrelation:Cn Rh= 1 1 6 /(2.28)where n is the well-known Manning's roughness coefficient (see Chapter 5).Substituting C from (2.27) into (2.28) we have the Manning formula for uniformflows:46 Layman`s GuidebookJn R Sh e= 1 2 3 1 2 / /(2.29)or alternativelyQn AR Sh e= 1 2 3 1 2 / /(2.30)The parameter ARh2/3 has been defined as the section factor and is given, forvarious channel sections, in table 2.4. The formula is entirely empirical and the ncoefficient is not dimensionless, so the formulae given here are only valid in S.I.units. Furthermore the formulae are only applicable to channels with a flat bottom.The analysis of natural watercourses is more complex and the above formulaecan only be applied as first approximations.From (2.30) it may be deduced that for a channel with a certain cross-sectionarea A and a given slope S, the discharge increases by increasing the hydraulicradius. That means the hydraulic radius is an efficiency index. As the hydraulicradius is the quotient of the area A and the wetted perimeter P, the most efficientsection will be the one with the minimum wetted perimeter.Among all cross-sectional areas, the semicircle is the one, which has the minimumwetted perimeter for a given area. Unfortunately such a channel, with a semicircularcross section is expensive to build and difficult to maintain, and so is only used insmall section channels built with prefabricated elements. Putting aside thesemicircular section, the most efficient trapezoidal section is a half hexagon. Themost commonly used channel section in small hydro schemes is the rectangularsection, easy to build, waterproof and maintain.In chapter 6 the selection of the channel section is considered from the constructionviewpoint, balancing efficiency, land excavation volumes, construction methods, etc2.2.3 Principles of energy in open channel flowsUniform flows in open channels are mostly steady and unsteady uniform flowsare rather rare. If the flow lines are parallel and we take the free surface of thewater as the reference plane, the summation of the elevation energy "h and thepressure energy P/g is constant and equal to the water depth. In practice most ofthe uniform flows and a large part of the varied steady flows are parallel. On achannel with a sensibly constant reasonable slope (figure 2.16 a), the pressurehead at any submerged point is equal to the vertical distance measured from thefree surface to the point (depth of water). The stress distribution is typically trian-gular. Nevertheless if the water is flowing over a convex path, such as a spillway,the centrifugal flow acts in an opposite direction to the gravity, and the stressdistribution is distorted and looks like figure 2.16 b): the pressure energy is givenby the difference between the depth and the centrifugal acceleration of the watermv2/r, being r the radius of curvature of the convex path. If the path is concave theacceleration force is added to the depth and the stress distribution looks like infigure 2.16 c). Consequently the resulting pressure head, for water flows along astraight line, a convex path and a concave path is respectively47Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic EngineeringPv a Pv vJrg b Pv vJrg c

= = = + ( ); ( ); ( )2 2(2.31)where g is the specific weight of water, y the depth measured from the free watersurface to the point, V the water velocity at that point and r the radius of curvatureof the curved flow path.The specific energy in a channel section or energy head measured with respectto the bottom of the channel at the section isE v Jg= +22 (2.32)where a is a coefficient that take into account the actual velocity distribution in theparticular channel section, whose average velocity is V. The coefficient can varyfrom a minimum of 1,05 -for a very uniform distribution- to 1.20 for a highly unevendistribution. Nevertheless in a preliminary approach it can be used a = 1, areasonable value when the slope is under 0.018 (a <101). Equation 2.32 becomesE v Jg= +22 (2.33)A channel section with a water area A and a discharge Q, will have a specificenergyE v QgA= +222 (2.34)Equation (2.34) shows that given a discharge Q, the specific energy at a givensection, is a function of the depth of the flow only.When the depth of flow y is plotted, for a certain discharge Q, against the specificenergy E, a specific energy curve, with two limiting boundaries, like the onerepresented in figure 2.17 is obtained. The lower limit, AC, is asymptotic to thea48 Layman`s Guidebookhorizontal axis and the upper, AB, to the line E=y. The vertex point A on the specificenergy curve represents the depth y at which the discharge Q can be deliveredthrough the section at a minimum energy. For every point over the axis E, greaterthan A, there are two possible water depths. At the smaller depth the discharge isdelivered at a higher velocity and hence at a higher specific energy a flow knownas supercritical flow. At the larger depth the discharge is delivered at a smallervelocity but also with a higher specific energy, a flow known as subcritical flow.In the critical state the specific energy is a minimum, and its value can thereforebe computed by equating the first derivative of the specific energy (equation 2.36)with respect to "y "to zero.dEdv QgA dAdv= + =23 1 0 (2.35)The differential water area near the free surface, dA/dy = T, where T is the topwidth of the channel section (see figure 2.17).By definition Y AT= (2.36)The parameter Y is known as the "hydraulic depth of the section, and it plays abig role in the studying the flow of water in a channel.Substituting in equation (2.37) dA/dy by T and A/T by Y:QgA dAdv QgA TA Jg Y JgY3322211 1 = = = = ; (2.37)49Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic EngineeringThe quantity JgY is dimensionless and known as the Froude number.When NF= 1 as in equation (2.37), the flow is in the critical state; the flow is in thesupercritical state when NF<1 and in the subcritical state when NF>1. Figure 2.17can be analysed in this way. The AB line represents the supercritical flows, andthe AC the subcritical ones.As shown in figure 2.17, a family of similar curves can be drawn for the samesection and different discharges Q. For higher discharges the curve moves to theright and for lower discharges to the left.The second term of equation (2.37) can be written:Qg YA22= (2.38)In a rectangular channel Y = y and A=by; equation (2.38) may be rewrittenQg v b23 2=In the critical state y = yc being yc the critical depth andv Qgb qgc = =223 23 (2.39)where q=Q/b is the discharge per unit width of the channel.Table 2.4 shows the geometric characteristics of different channel profiles andTable 2.5, taken from Straub (1982) the empirical formulae used to estimate yc, innon-rectangular channel.ExampIe 2.6In a trapezoidaI section channeI where b=6 m and z = 2, compute thecriticaI depth fIow for a discharge of 17 m3/s.From table 2.5 Y = a Q2/g = 29.46 for a=1The solution is valid provided 0.1 < Q/b2 < 0.4; as q/b2 = 0.19 it is valid

m:bb :vc 86 . 03081 . 0 27 . 025 . 1 75 . 0 = |.|

\| +=The estimation of the critical depth, and the supercritical and subcritical ones,permits the profile of the free surface to be determined, in cases such as a suddenincrease in the slope of a channel to be connected to another; for to spillwaydesign profiles;/g the free surface behind a gate etc. Nevertheless in most casesthe designer should make use of empirical formulae based on past experience.50 Layman`s GuidebookTabIe 2.4 GeometricaI properties of typicaI open channeIsArea A by (b+zy)y 18 2( ) sen DWetted perimeter P b+2y b v : + + 2 1 2 1 2 / DTop width of section T b b+2zy 2 v D v b gHydraulic radius R bvb v +2 b :v vb v :++ +b g2 1 2 14 1FHG IKJsenD

TabIe 2.5 (Straub 1982) Y YY YY= a aa aa Q

2/g51Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic Engineering2.3 Computer programsThere are quite a few computer programs that help to solve all kind of problemswith open channels. We will simply refer to the Flow Pro 2.0, from ProfessionalSoftware for Engineering Applications (PSA), a shareware that can be found inINTERNET, at the address http:\\www.prosoftapps.com for an evaluation copy.The first step in computing a water surface profile is to select the Channel Type.You can do this by clicking the Channel Type menu and selecting Trapezoidal,Circular, Ushaped or Elongated Circular. The program title will reflect yourselection, and the input fields will change accordingly.Once a channel type has been selected and all of the required inputs have beenentered, you can compute the water surface profile by selecting Compute fromthe Tools|Water Surface Profile menu. Flow Pro will compute the profile alongwith the normal and critical depths, the profile and flow types. The water surfaceprofile grid will contain the tabulated data, which can be saved and imported intoany spreadsheet for further analysis.Flow Pro will classify the type of flow in a water surface profile. The flow type will beclassified as either subcritical or supercritical. The profile computations start at thedownstream end of the channel for subcritical flow, and the upstream end forsupercritical flow. This is due to the location of the control depth for each type of flow.For subcritical flow, the control depth is typically critical depth at the downstreamend of a free discharging outfall or the height over a downstream weir. Supercriticalflow has an upstream control depth such as the depth of flow under a gate. Thefigure 2,1852 Layman`s Guidebookwater surface profile grid data will start the computations at zero, and continueuntil normal or critical depth is reached or until the channel ends. It is important tonote the type of flow, so the direction the calculations proceed in the channel isunderstood.Flow Pro will continue to calculate the profile along the length of the channel untilthe depth reaches normal or critical depth or the channel ends (whichever occursfirst).Figure 2.18 shows the dialog box with the depth, flow rate, slope and roughnessof a certain canal, with the required inputs and the computed results.53Chapter 2. Fundamentals oI Hydraulic EngineeringBibliography1. N.H.C.Hwang y Carlos Hita, "Fundamentals of Hydraulic Engineering Systems",Prentice Hall Inc. Englewood Cliffs, New Jersey 19872. F.H. White, "Fluid Mechanics", MacGraw-Hill Inc. USA3. A. Piqueras, "Evacuacin de Broza", ESHA Info n 9 verano 19934. L. Allievi, The theory of waterhammer, Transactions ASME 19295. H. Chaudry. Applied Hydraulic Transients, Van Nostrand Reinhold Co. 19796. V.L. Streeter y E.B. Wylie, Hydraukic Transients, McGraw-Hill Book Co., NewYork 19677. J. Parmakian. Waterhammer analysis. Dower Publications, New York 19638. R.H. French, "Hidrulica de canales abiertos" McGraw-Hill/Interamericana deMexico, 19889. V.T. Chow, Open Channel Hydraulics, McGraw-Hill Book Co., New York 1959Otra bibliografa sobre el tema del captulo:H.W.King y E.F. Brater, Handbook of HYdraulics, McGraw-Hill Book Co., NewYork 1963R. Silvester, Specific Energy and Force Equations in Open-Channel Flow,Water Power March 1961V.L. Streeter y E.B. Wylie, Fluid Mechanics, McGraw-Hill Book Co., New York197554 Layman`s Guidebook3.0 IntroductionAll hydroelectric generation depends on falling water. Streamflow is the fuel of ahydropower plant and without it, generation ceases. Accordingly, the study of anypotential hydroelectric scheme must first of all address the availability of anadequate water supply. For an ungauged watercourse, where observations ofdischarge over a long period are not available involves the science of hydrology;the study of rainfall and streamflow, the measurement of drainage basins,catchment areas, evapotranspiration and surface geology.Figure 3.1 illustrates how the water by flowing from point A to point B, regardlessof the path B along the watercourse, an open canal or a penstock B it losesenergy according to the equation:P = QHgWhere P is the power in kW lost by the water, Q the flow in m3/s, Hg the grosshead in m and g the specific weight of water, being the product of its mass and thegravitational acceleration (9.81 kN/m3).The water can follow the riverbed, losing the power through friction and turbulence.Or it can flow from A to B through a pipe with a turbine at its lower end. The waterwould lose the same amount of power, in pipe friction, turbulence in the inlet, bends,valves, etc and in pushing its way through the turbine. In the later case it is thepower lost in pushing through the turbine that will be converted by it to mechanicalenergy and then, by rotating the generator, to electricity. It can be seen that theobjective of a good design is to minimise the amount of power lost between A and B,so the maximum amount of power may be available to rotate the generator.3 The water resource and its potential56 Layman`s GuidebookTherefore to estimate the water potential one needs to know the variation of thedischarge throughout the year and how large is the gross available head. In thebest circumstances the hydrologic authorities would have installed a gaugingstation, in the stretch of stream under consideration, and streamflow time seriesdata would have been gathered regularly over several years.Unfortunately, is rather unusual that regular gaugings have been carried out inthe stretch of river where the development of a small hydro scheme is proposed.If that happen to be true it will suffice to make use of one of the several approaches,explained later, to estimate the long-term average annual flow and the flow durationcurve for the stretch in question.Whatsoever, the first step to take is to look out for streamflow time series, in thestretch of river in question, if possible, or if not, in other stretches of the sameriver or in another similar nearby river, that permit to reconstitute the time seriesof the referred stretch of river.3.1 StreamfIow recordsThere is a United Nations organisation, the World Meteorological Organisation,with a hydrologic information service (INFOHYDRO) whose objective is to provideinformation regarding: National and international (governmental and non-governmental) organisations, Institutions and agencies dealing with hydrology; Hydrological and related activities of these bodies; Principal international river and lake basins of the world; Networks of hydrological observing stations of countries - numbers of stationsand duration of records; National hydrological data banks - status of collection, processing and archivingof data; International data banks related to hydrology and water resources.INFOHYDRO includes a Manual and a computerised dataThe INFOHYDRO Manual contains information concerning the entire INFOHYDROand its operation. It also contains all hydrological information available at presentin INFOHYDRO. Thus, the Manual comprises in a single volume comprehensiveinformation on the Hydrological Services of the countries of the world and theirdata-collection activities. Chapter IV of the INFOHYDRO manual contains tablesgiving the numbers of observing stations maintained by the countries of the worldas follows: Precipitation Evaporation Discharge Stage (water level) Sediment and water quality GroundwaterThe INFOHYDRO Manual may also be purchased from WMO at a price of chf132. Request WMO No. 683, INFOHYDRO Manual, (Operational HydrologyReport No. 28).57Chapter 3. The water resource and its potentialThe INFOHYDRO is a computerised database, and data can also be supplied ondiskette. Requests should be addressed to:The Secretary-GeneralWorld Meteorological Organization41, Avenue Giuseppe MottaP.O. Box 2300CH-1211 GENEVA 2SwitzerlandTelephone: (+41 22) 730 81 11Facsimile: (+41 22) 734 23 26Cable: METEOMOND GENEVETelex: 23 260 OMM CH3.2 Evaluating streamflows by discharge measurementsIf appropriate streamflow time series cannot be found, and there is time, thedischarge may be directly measured for at least a year -a single measurement ofinstantaneous flow in a watercourse is of little use. To measure the dischargeseveral methods are available:3.2.1 Velocity-area methodThis is a conventional method for medium to large rivers, involving the measure-ment of the cross-sectional area of the river and the mean velocity of the waterthrough it; it is a useful approach for determining the streamflow with a minimumeffort. An appropriate point must be selected on a relatively straight, smoothlyflowing portion of the river to be gauged (figure 3.2). The river at this point shouldhave a uniform width, and the area well defined and clean.As discharge varies, the top water level (termed the stage of the river) rises andfalls. The stage is observed daily at the same time each day, on a board - markedwith metres and centimetres, in the style of a levelling staff- with the discharges.58 Layman`s GuidebookFigure 3.3 shows a suitable marking system. In modern gauging stations, insteadof a board, that requires regular observations, any one of several water-levelmeasurement sensors available, which automatically register the stage, may beused. Periodic discharge measurements from the lowest to the highest are madeover a time period of several months, to calibrate the stage observations orrecordings.59Chapter 3. The water resource and its potentialThe correlation stage-discharge is called a rating curve (figure 3.4) and permitsthe estimation of the river discharge by reading the river stage. To draw this curve,both the stage and the discharge must be simultaneously read. It is stronglyrecommended to begin measuring the low flows, and use the data to start to drawa curve that correlates the flows and the 'n' Manning coefficient. Later on themethod of the river slope (section 3.3.4) can be used to estimate the high flows,often impossible to measure with the other methods.The rating curve (figure 3.4) is represented byQ = a(H+B)n (3.1)Where a and n = constantsH = river stage as measured or recordedB = correction factor to get the actual levelTo compute B (see figure 3.2) the data corresponding to two discharges shouldbe noted, such asQ1 = a(H1+B)nQ2 = a(H2+B)nBy measuring a third point, corresponding to a discharge Q3 and a stage H3

+ 321 21 2 32 (3.2)There are ISO recommendations2,3 for the correct use of this technique.3.2.1.1 Measuring the cross-sectional areaTo compute the cross-sectional area of a natural watercourse it should be dividedinto a series of trapezoids (figure 3.5). Measuring the trapezoid sides, by markedrules, such as figure 3.5 illustrates, the cross-section would be given byS b h h hn n= + + +1 2 ....(3.3)3.2.1.2 Measuring the velocitySince the velocity both across the flow and vertically through it is not constant, itis necessary to measure the water velocity at a number of points to obtain amean value. There are several ways of doing this, two of which are discussedbelow.By a fIoaterA floating object, which is largely, submerged B for instance a wood plug or apartially filled bottle B is located in the centre of the streamflow. The time t (seconds)elapsed to traverse a certain length L (m) is recorded. The surface speed (m/s)60 Layman`s Guidebookwould be the quotient of the length L and the time t. To estimate the average flowspeed, the above value must be multiplied by a correction factor, that may varybetween 0.60 and 0.85 depending on the watercourse depth and their bottomand riverbank roughness (0.75 is a well accepted value)By a propeIIer current-meterA current-meter is a fluid-velocity-measuring instrument. A small propeller rotatesabout a horizontal shaft, which is kept parallel to the streamlines by tail fins. Theinstrument is ballasted to keep it as nearly as possible directly below the observer.Another version of the instrument has a circlet of small conical cups disposedhorizontally about the suspension axis. (figure 3.6)Each revolution of the propeller is recorded electrically through a cable to theobserver and the number of revolutions is counted by the observer, or automatically,over a short period (say 1 or 2 minutes). These observations are converted into61Chapter 3. The water resource and its potentialwater velocities from a calibration curve for the instrument. By moving the metervertically and horizontally to a series of positions whose co-ordinates in the cross-section are determined, a complete velocity map of the cross-section can bedrawn and the discharge through it calculated.In the case of medium to large rivers observations are made by lowering themeter from a bridge, though if the bridge is not a single-span one there will bedivergence and convergence of the streamlines caused by the piers, which cancause considerable errors. In many instances, however the gauging site, whichshould be in as straight and uniform a reach of a river as is possible, will have nobridge and if it is deep and in flood, a cable to hold some stable boat must beprovided, together with a lighter measuring cable to determine horizontal positionin the cross-section.Since the drag on a boat with at least two occupants and suspended current-meter is considerable, a securely fastened cable should be used. The presence ofsuitable large trees at a particular site often necessitates its choice for this reason.Alternatively, for very large rivers, cableways are sometime used to suspend themeter, either from a manned cable car or directly from the cable car, the instrumentin this latter case being positioned by auxiliary cables from the riverbanks.Depths should always be measured at the time of velocity observation since aprofile can change appreciably during flood discharges. Observers should alsoremember such elementary rules as to observe the stage before and after thedischarge measurement, and to observe the water slope by accurate levelling topegs at the water level as far upstream and downstream of the gauging site as ispracticable, up to (say) 500m in each direction.As water velocities increase in high floods the ballasted current meter will beincreasingly swept downstream on an inclined cable. The position of a meter inthese circumstances can be found reasonably accurately if the cable angle ismeasured. Ballast can be increased but only within limits. Rods can be used tosuspend the meters but a rigid structure in the boat will then be required to handlethe rods, calling for a stable platform on a catamaran-type of craft. Rod vibrationand bending are common in deep rivers unless diameters exceed 500m, in whichcase the whole apparatus is getting very heavy and unmanageable.By eIectro-magnetic current-meterAn electro-magnetic (e/m) current-meter is an electrical induction-measurementinstrument, with no moving parts, mounted in a totally enclosed streamlined probe. Theprobe can be mounted on rods and held at various depths or suspended on a cable.The e/m meter has the advantages of being smaller and having a widermeasurement range than the propeller meters. It is particularly useful at very lowvelocities when propeller meters become erratic. Its sensitivity and lowervulnerability to fouling from weeds and debris make it attractive for use in heavilypolluted or weedy streams.Each unit is provided with a surface control box with a digital display and dry-cellbatteries. A set of stainless steel wading rods is also standard equipment. Latestmodels have built-in battery-charger circuitry.62 Layman`s GuidebookIt will be appreciated that since each river is unique, each will require carefulassessment of its width, depth, likely flood velocities, cable-support facilities,availability of bridges, boats, etc. before a discharge measurement programme isstarted.The discharge at the cross-section is best obtained by plotting each velocityobservation on a cross-section of the gauging site with an exaggerated verticalscale. IsoveIs or contours of equal velocity are then drawn and the includedareas measured by a planimeter. A typical cross-section, so treated, is shown infigure 3.7 a). Alternatively, the river may be subdivided vertically into sectionsand the mean velocity of each section applied to its area, as in figure 3.7 b) Inthis method the cross-sectional area of any one section should not exceed 10per cent of the total cross-sectional area.A check should always be made using the slope-area method of section 3.3.4and a value obtained for Manning's n. In this way a knowledge of the n values ofthe river at various stages will be built up, which may prove most valuable inextending the discharge rating curve subsequently.To ensure uniformity in the techniques of current-meter gauging ISO has publishedvarious recommendations12:33.2.2 DiIution methods.Dilution gauging is particularly suited to small turbulent streams where depthsand flows are inappropriate for current metering and flow structures would beunnecessarily expensive. The method involves the injection of a chemical into thestream and the sampling of the water some distance downstream after completemixing of the chemical in the water has occurred. The chemical can either be addedby constant-rate injection until the sampling downstream reveals a constant63Chapter 3. The water resource and its potentialconcentration level, or administered in a single dose as quickly as possible, knownas guIp injection. In this case samples over a period of time disclose theconcentration-time correlation. In both cases the concentration of chemical in thesamples is used to compute the dilution, and hence, the discharge of the streamcan be obtained. Analysis of the samples is by an automated colorimetric procedurethat estimates the concentration of very small amounts of the chromium compoundby comparison with a sample of the injection solution. The equipment is expensiveand specialised 4.Nowadays the above methods have been substituted by the method developed byLittlewood7, requiring simple and relatively cheap equipment. The method dependson the electrical conductivity of solutions of common salt (NaCl) in the stream waterand is a version of the relative-dilution gauging method of Aastad and Sognen8.9The discharge is measured by gradually discharging a known volume (V) of astrong salt solution (c1) into the stream at a known rate (q), and measuring, atshort intervals, the change in conductivity of the water at the downstream end ofthe mixing length. In that way it is possible to plot a conductivity-time curve, alonga time T as in figure 3.8. The average of the ordinates of this curve represents theaverage of the difference in conductivity, between the salt solutions and thestreamwater, upstream the injection point. If a small volume, v, of the particularstrong solution is added to a large volume V* of the streamwater, and the differencesin conductivity Dc* are measured, the discharge will be then given by the equation:Q VTVvcc= * *'

(3.5)where V = volume of injection solutionT = duration of solute wave (s)v = volume of the strong solution added to a largerV* = volume of streamwaterDc* = change in conductivity (ohm-1) consequence of the dilution of v in V*c' = ordinate's average curve conductivity-time64 Layman`s Guidebook3.2.3 Weir methodIf the watercourse being developed is reasonably small (say < 4 m3/s) then it maybe possible to build a temporary weir. This is a low wall or dam across the streamto be gauged with a notch through which all the water may be channelled. Manyinvestigations have established accurate formulae for the discharge through suchnotches. A simple linear measurement of the difference in level between theupstream water surface and the bottom of the notch is sufficient to quantify thedischarge. However it is important to measure the water surface level somedistance back from the weir (at least four times the depth over the base of thenotch) and to keep the notch free of sediment and the edge sharp.Several types of notch can be used - rectangular, vee or trapezoidal. The V-notchis most accurate at very low discharges but the rectangular or trapezoidal arecapable of a much wider range of flows. The actual notches may be metal platesor planed hardwood with sharp edges, built to the dimensions of figure 3.9.Flumes can be used similarly, where a stream is channelled through a particulargeometrically-shaped regular channel section for some distance before entering alength of different cross-section, usually made so by side contraction or steps in thebed.In most cases of small-hydro development, such structures are too expensiveand adequate flow data can be derived by simpler methods. Appropriate guidanceand formulae may be found in references 10, 11, 12, 13, 14,15.65Chapter 3. The water resource and its potential3.2.4 Slope-area methodThis method depends on hydraulic principles and is useful for high flows whereother methods are impractical. It presupposes that it is practical to drive in pegs ormake other temporary elevation marks at water-surface level at the time of the flowmeasurement, upstream and downstream of the discharge-measuring site. Thesemarks can subsequently be used to establish the water slope (S). Cross-sectionalmeasurements will yield the area (A) and hydraulic radius of the section (R). Onceknown these parameters the discharge is computed by the Manning formulaQ AR Sn=2 3 1 2 / /(3.6)This method is sometimes criticised because of its dependence on the value of n.Since n for natural streams is about 0.035, an error in n of 0.001 gives an error indischarge of 3 per cent. This objection may be partially met by plotting n againststage for all measured discharges, so that the choice of n for high stages is notarbitrary but is taken from such a plot. If a high flood slope can be measured, thenthis method may well be the best one for such flows. Typical values of Manning'sn for watercourses are given Table 3.1Discharge

m

/s3Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug66 Layman`s GuidebookTabIe 3.1 TypicaI vaIues of Manning's n for watercourses.Watercourses nNatural stream channels flowing smoothly in clean conditions 0.030Standard natural stream or river in stable conditions 0.035River with shallows and meanders and noticeable aquatic growth 0.045River or stream with rods and stones, shallows and weedy 0.0603.3 Streamflow characteristicsA programme of stream gauging at a particular site over a period of years willprovide a table of stream discharges, which to be of any use has to be organisedinto a usable form.3.3.1 HydrographOne way of doing this is to plot them sequentially in the form of a hydrograph,which shows discharge against time, in chronological order (see figure 3.10)3.3.2 Flow Duration Curves (FDC)Another way of organising discharge data is by plotting a flow duration curve (FDC),that shows for a particular point on a river the proportion of time during which thedischarge there equals or exceeds certain values. It can be obtained from thehydrograph by organising the data by magnitude instead of chronologically. If theindividual daily flows for one year are organised in categories: - e.gNo of days % of the yearFlows of 8.0 m3/s and greater 41 11.23Flows of 7.0 m3/s and greater 54 14.90Flows of 6.5 m3/s and greater 61 16.80Flows of 5.5 m3/s and greater 80 21.80Flows of 5.0 m3/s and greater 90 24.66Flows of 4.5 m3/s and greater 100 27.50Flows of 3.0 m3/s and greater 142 39.00Flows of 2.0 m3/s and greater 183 50.00Flows of 1.5 m3/s and greater 215 58.90Flows of 1.0 m3/s and greater 256 70.00Flows of 0.35 m3/s and greater 365 100.00.then a graph like figure 3.11 will be obtained, which represents the ordinates offigure 3.10 arranged in order of magnitude instead of chronologically.Nowadays, when most gauging stations are computerised, the easiest way toderive a FDC is to transpose the digital data to a spreadsheet, sorting them indescending order, and by hand or by using a simple macro, classify the data as inthe above table. Once done, the same spreadsheet, using its graphic buildingcapability will draw the curve FDC (such as has been draw figure 3.11).67Chapter 3. The water resource and its potentialFor many rivers the ratio of peak to minimum discharges may be two or moreorders of magnitude and FDCs for points on them are often more convenientlydrawn with the ordinate (Q) to a logarithmic scale, and a normal probability scaleused for the frequency axis. On such a graph, if the logarithms of the dischargesare normally distributed, then the FDC plots as a straight line. Figure 3.12represents figure 3.11 with the vertical axis in logarithmic scale.68 Layman`s Guidebook3.3.3 Standardised FDC curvesFDCs for different rivers can be compared when presented in this more compactway, by standardising them. The discharges are divided firstly by the contributingcatchment area and secondly by weighted average annual rainfall over thecatchment. The resulting discharges, in m3/s or litres/s, per unit area, per unitannual rainfall (typically m3/s/km2/m) can then be compared directly. Figure 3.13shows twenty FDCs corresponding to catchment areas of different geologicalcomposition, drawn to a double logarithmic scale.Another method for standardising FDCs is to express Q in terms of Q/Qm, whereQm is the mean flow. The use of such a non-dimensional ordinate allows allrivers, large and small, to be compared on the same graph. If sufficient recordsare available from neighbouring rivers of similar topographical character in a si-milar climate, these methods can be very useful.3.3.4 Evaluating streamflows at ungauged sitesWhen there are no flow records at a particular location it is necessary to proceedfrom first principles. Rainfall data are normally available from national agencieson an annual-average basis, but often only on a fairly small scale. Attempts shouldalways be made to find local records, which will indicate seasonal variation. Failingthat, a standard rain gauge should be installed in the catchment area, immediatelystudies are considered. Even one year's records will help in the production of asynthesised FDC.The first step then is to estimate the mean annual flow Qm (also referred to as ADFor average daily flow). In UK the mean flow is estimated using a catchment waterbalance methodology: the long term average annual catchment runoff can be69Chapter 3. The water resource and its potentialassumed to be equal to the difference between standard average annual rainfall(SAAR) and actual evaporation (AE). Catchment values of SAAR and potentialevaporation are estimated from the rainfall and potential evaporation (PE) maps.Actual evaporation is estimated from potential evaporation using a scaling factorr where r increases with SAAR and hence increasing water availability. Forcatchments with annual average rainfall in excess of 850mm /year, it is assumedthat actual evaporation is equal to potential. This relationship between SAAR isgiven byr = 0.00061 x SAAR + 0.475 for SAAR < 850 mmr = 1.0 for SAAR

850 mmActual evaporation is calculated using AE = r x PEThe average runoff depth (AARD in millimetres) over the catchment area (AREAin km2) is converted to mean flow in m3s-1 by:Qm = (AARD x AREA) / 31536In other countries it may need modification, using similar methods. For instance,in Spain, the water balance methodology does not yield feasible results, whereatthe equation to represent mean flow is given by a modified empirical equation:The meanflow over catchment is then:Qm = Runoff x AREA x 3.17 x 10 B5where Qm is given in m3s-1, the runoff in mm and the AREA in km2.Although the mean annual flow gives an idea of a stream's power potential, afirmer knowledge of the stream's flow regime, as obtained from a flow durationcurve is needed. The flow duration curve depends on the type of soil on which therain falls. If it is very permeable (sand) the infiltration capacity will be high and thegroundwater will be a large proportion of flow in the streams. If it is impermeable(rock) the opposite will be the case. The catchments of high permeability andlarge groundwater contributions will therefore tend to have more regular dischargeswith less fluctuating flow than rocky catchments, where the variations will be greatand will reflect the incidence of rainfall to a much greater extent.In UK, for instance, the soils have been categorised into 29 discrete groups torepresent different physical properties and the hydrological response of soils.The classification system is referred to as the Hydrology Of Soil Types (HOST)classification. By measuring the areas of each of these categories, within thecatchment area, as a proportion of the whole, the BFI (Base Flow Index) can becomputed. Knowing the BFI of the catchment, a standardised FDC can be selectedfrom figure 3.13. Multiplying the ordinates of the selected FDC by the catchmentQm the particular flow duration curve of the site is obtainedIn Spain, the distribution of the soils has been identified from the Soil Map of theEuropean Communities (CEC, 1985) which is based on the FAO/UNESCO SoilClassification of the World. Nineteen soils are represented within the gaugedcatchments considered in the study.70 Layman`s Guidebook3.3.5 European Atlas of Small Scale Hydropower ResourcesAlthough using the above methodology is a rather lengthy process, the flow regimeof the site, represented by the FDC, can be easily estimated. To aid local authorities,water resource planners and potential investors, to asses the feasibility ofdeveloping small hydro schemes anywhere in the European Union, the Instituteof Hydrology in the UK, has developed the European AtIas of SmaII ScaIeHydropower PotentiaI. The Atlas has been developed on behalf of the EuropeanSmall Hydropower Association (ESHA) with the financial aid of the E.C, DGXVIIin the frame of the ALTENER Programme.The Atlas, which is presented as a menu driven Microsoft Windows TM compatiblesoftware package, incorporates methods for deriving flow duration curves atungauged sites and standard engineering methods for using these curves toestimate the hydropower generation potential for the commercial turbine types.To estimate the hydro potential of a site the Atlas proceeds as follows:1 estimation of the catchment characteristics for the site, including catchment area,average rainfall, average potential evaporation and appropriate low flow statistic;2 estimation of the flow regime within the catchment, represented by the flowduration curve, using above catchment characteristics:71Chapter 3. The water resource and its potential3 estimation of power potential for a range of suitable turbines based on theestimated flow duration curveTo accomplish the task the user is required to define the catchment boundary.The estimation of the catchment characteristics then proceeds by the program:1. Calculating the catchment area;2. Transposing the catchment boundary onto thematic catchment characteristicmaps to estimate catchment average values of annual average rainfall, potentialevaporation and the fractional extent of individual soil units;3. Estimating the mean flow using a water balance model incorporating theparameters thus determined.4. Calculation of a standardised low flow statistic using the appropriate relationshipbetween flow and soil characteristics (assigned to hydrological response unitsas appropriate).Graphical and tabular output may be obtained at each stage in the estimationprocedure within the software. Figure 3.14 shows the flow duration curve of a sitein UK. The box at the upper right is used to obtain the probability of exceedencefor an absolute or relative flow, just as the flow corresponding to a certainexceedence.72 Layman`s GuidebookThe flow duration curve, in conjunction with user defined head and design flowparameters, is used to calculate energy and power output, which can potentiallybe anticipated at the site. Figure 3.15 shows a power potential report where grossand net average annual output and rated capacity for various possible turbinesare clearly indicated.The computer program is easy to operate and yields very interesting results. Thepackage in its different modules permits the modification of the input data, comingfrom the previous module.3.3.6 FDCs for particular months or other periodsIt is always important to know when, during the year, water will be available forgeneration. This is required when considering the economics of schemes in thosenetworks where tariffs, paid by utilities to independent producers, vary with theseason of the year and time of day.FDCs can be produced for particular periods of time as well as for particularyears or periods of record. Indeed, it is standard practice to prepare FDCs for six"winter months and six "summer months. This can be taken further, to obtainFDCs for individual months, if so desired. It is simply a matter of extracting theflow records for a particular month from each year of record and treating thesedata as the whole population. If sufficient flow records for this process do notexist, then the rainfall record can be used.3.3.7 Water pressure or head3.3.7.1 Measurement of gross headThe gross head is the vertical distance that the water falls through in generatingpower, i.e. between the upper and lower water surface levels.Field measurements of gross head are usually carried out using surveyingtechniques. The precision required in the measurement will impose the methodsto be employed.In the past the best way to measure it was by levelling with a surveyor's level andstaff, but the process was slow. Accurate measurements were made by a tachometeror less accurately by a clinometer or Abney level. Nowadays with digital theodolites,the electronic digital levels and especially with the electronic total stations the jobhas been simplified. The modern electronic digital levels provides an automaticdisplay of height and distance within about 4 seconds with a height measurementaccuracy of 0,4 mm, and the internal memory makes it possible to store approximately2,400 data points. Surveying by Global Positioning Systems (GPS) is alreadypractised and a handheld GPS receiver is ideal for field positioning, and roughmapping.3.3.7.2 Estimation of net headHaving established the gross head available it is necessary to allow for the lossesarising from trash racks, pipe friction, bends and valves. In addition to these losses,73Chapter 3. The water resource and its potentialcertain types of turbines must be set to discharge to the atmosphere above theflood level of the tail water (the lower surface level). The gross head minus thesum of all the losses equals the net head, which is what is available to drive theturbine. Example 3.1 will help to clarify the situationExampIe 3.1Figure 3.16 shows the pipe Iayout in a smaII hydropower scheme. ThenominaI discharge is 3 m3/s and the gross head 85 m. The penstock has1.1 m diameter in the first Iength and 0.90 m in the second one. The radiusof curvature of the bend is four times the diameter of the pipe. At theentrance of the intake there is a trashrack incIined 60 with the horizontaI.The rack is made of stainIess steeI fIat bars, 12 mm thick and the widthbetween bars is 70 mm. Estimate the totaI head Ioss.According to experience the velocity at the entrance of the rack should bebetween 0.25 m/s and 1.0 m/s. The required trashrack area is estimated by theformula:= sen1v10 1Qb t tKS |.|

\|+=where S is the area in m2,, t the bar thickness (mm), b the distance betweenbars (mm), Q the discharge (m3/s), v0 the water velocity at the entrance and K1a coefficient which, if the trashrack has an automatic cleaner, is equal to 0.80.Assuming v0 = 1 m/s, S=5.07 m2. For practical reasons a 6 m2 trashrack may bespecified, corresponding to a v0 = 0.85 m/s, which is acceptable.The headloss traversing the trashrack, as computed from the Kirschner equationh mr = FHG IKJ

=fhThe headloss coefficient in the first bend is Kb = 0.085 (one half of thecorresponding loss of a 90 bend); in the second Kb = 0.12 and in the thirdKb =0.14The taper pipe, with an angle of 30, gives a loss in the contraction hc = 0.02 m(for a ratio of diameters 0.8 and a water velocity in the smaller pipe = 4.72 m/s)The friction headloss in the second length is computed in the same way as thefirst one, and accordingly hf/65 = 0.0234 (water velocity in second span is 4.72 m/s)The coefficient of headloss in the gate valve is Kv= 0.15.Therefore the friction headloss are estimated as0.008 x 108 + 0.0234 x 65 = 2.385 mThe turbulence headloss will be as follows:In the trashrack 0.007 mIn the pipe entrance 0.8 x 0.508 0.406 mIn the first bend 0.085x0.508 0.043 mIn the second bend 0.12x1.135 0.136 mIn the third bend 0.14x1.135 0.159 mIn the confusor 0.02x1.135 0.023 mIn the gate valve 0.15x1.135 0.170 mThe total head loss is equal to 2.385 m friction loss plus 1.375 m turbulenceloss, giving a net head of 81.24 m. This represents a loss of power of 4.42%which is reasonable. Improving the pipe entrance the loss coefficient will diminishby almost 39 cm.3.4 Residual, reserved or compensation flowAn uncontrolled abstraction of water from a watercourse, to pass it through aturbine, even if it is returned to the stream close to the intake, could lead to sectionsof the watercourse being left almost dry with serious results for aquatic life.To avoid this happening, permission to divert water through a hydro turbine or alicence to abstract from a river or stream will almost always specify that a certainresidual flow should remain. The residual flow is sometimes called other names,depending on the country, or authority responsible.It is in the interest of the hydro-power developer to keep the residual flow as smallas is acceptable to the licensing authority, since in seasons of low flow, its releasemay mean generation being stopped if there is insufficient discharge to provideboth it and minimum turbine discharge. On the other hand the lack of flowingwater can endanger the life of the aquatic biota. In Chapter 7 the subject will betreated in depth from an environmental viewpoint.75Chapter 3. The water resource and its potential3.5 Estimation of plant capacity and energy outputThe FDC provides a means of selecting the right design discharge and taking intoaccount the reserved flow and the minimum technical turbine flow, estimate theplant capacity and the average annual energy output.Figure 3.17 illustrates the FDC of the site it is intended to evaluate. Usually thedesign flow is assumed to be, in a first approach, the difference between themean annual flow and the reserved flow. In actual practice is stronglyrecommended to evaluate the plant for other design flows in order to choose, theone that yields the best results. Once the design flow is defined (Qm-Qres), andthe net head estimated, suitable turbine types must be identified. The suitableturbines are those for which the design flow and head plot within the operationalenvelopes (figure 3.18). Figure 3.17 shows the useable region of the flow durationcurve. Every selected turbine has a minimum technical flow (with a lower dischargethe turbine either cannot operate or has a very low efficiency) and its efficiency isa function of the operating discharge.The gross average annual energy (E in kWh) is a functionE = fn (Qmedian, Hn, hturbine, hgenerator, h gearbox, htransformer, g,h)Where:Qmedian = flow in m3/s for incremental steps on the flow duration curveHn = specified net headhturbine = turbine efficiency, a function of Qmedian76 Layman`s Guidebook77Chapter 3. The water resource and its potentialhgenerator = generator efficiencyhgearbox = gearbox efficiencyhtransformer = transformer efficiencyh = number of hours for which the specified flow occurs.The software package uses a procedure to calculate the energy. It divides the useablearea into vertical 5% incremental strips starting from the origin. The final strip willintersect the FDC at Qmin or Qreserved which ever is larger. For each strip Qmedian iscalculated, the corresponding hturbine value is defined for the corresponding efficiencycurve and the energy contribution of the strip is calculated using the equation:DE = W.Qmedian.H. hturbine. hgenerator.hgearbox. htransformer .

g . hwhereW = strip width = 0.05 for all strips except the last one that should be calculatedh = number of hours in a yearg = specific weight of the water (9.81 KNm-3)The gross average energy is then the sum of the energy contribution for each strip.The capacity of each turbine (kW) it will be given by the product of their design flow(m3/s), net head (m), turbine efficiency (%), and specific weight of the water (kNm-3).In Chapter 6 can be seen the curves of turbine efficiency against flow for thecommercial turbines. Table 3.1gives the minimum technical flow for different typesof turbines, as a percentage of the design flow.78 Layman`s GuidebookTabIe 3.1 Minimum technicaI fIow of turbinesTurbine type QminFrancis spiral 30Francis open flume 30Semi Kaplan 15Kaplan 15Cross flow 15Pelton 10Turgo 10Propeller 65The European AtIas of SmaII ScaIe Hydropower PotentiaI includes a moduleto compute both the installed capacity and annual energy output of everyappropriate turbine, and prepare a complete report on the results. Anyone canestimate both power and energy output by hand, simply by calculating areas, butit is tedious work that can be shortened with the aid of the software package3.5.1 How the head varies with the flow and its influence on the turbinecapacityIn medium and high head schemes the head can be considered constant, becausethe variations in the upper or lower surface levels it is very small compared with thevalue of the head. In low head schemes, when the flow increases over the value ofthe rated flow the water surface level, both in the intake and in the tailrace, alsoincreases but at different rates, so that the head can considerably increase or decrease.If a turbine operate with a bigger flow than the design flow Qd , under a head H1smaller than the rated head Hd , the flow admitted by the turbine will be:Q Q HHdd1 1= (3.7)Headwater elevation versus spillway discharge is easy to compute. According tothe spillway theory,Q = CLH3/2 (3.8)where Q = Discharge over spillwayC = Spillway discharge coefficientL = Length of the spillway crestH = height of the water surface level above the spillway crestThe value of C depends on spillway shape, and may be found in hydraulicreference books.Headwater level is normally kept at spillway crest level when all the river dischargepasses through the turbines. When the river discharge exceeds maximum turbinedischarge, equation (3.8) is applied to the excess flow, which passes over thespillway. In this case measuring the head on the spillway crest we have at thesame time the level of the intake water surface and the river discharge (it sufficesto add the discharge going through the turbine).79Chapter 3. The water resource and its potentialThe tailrace level is more difficult to estimate. The Hydrologic Engineering Center(HEC) of the US Army Corp of Engineers, has developed a computer program, HEC-HMS, that can be usefull for that purpose. It can be downloaded, free of charge fromINTERNET, http://www.hec.usace.army.mil/software/software_distrib/hec-hms/hechmsprogram.htmlFigure 3.20 shows how the head varies with the flow in a real case and its influenceon the power delivered at different river discharges.3.5.2 Another methodology to compute power and annual energy outputIf the European Atlas software package is not available, the use of an electronicspreadsheet, with a model such as the one shown in Table 3.2 is suggested,especially in low head schemes where the flow passing through the turbine is afunction of the nominal head and the actual head, corresponding at this flow.The discharge passing through the turbine would be the river discharge, less thereserved flow, except if it exceeds maximum turbine discharge or other constraintson turbine discharge are encountered. If the head is smaller than the rated head,the discharge admitted by the turbine will be given by the equation:d i d i H H Q Q / = (3.9)80 Layman`s Guidebookwhere the suffix 'i' indicate the parameters corresponding to the point i in the FDCand the suffix 'd' the design parameters. The power P in kW will be given by theproduct of Q, H, h (global efficiency in %) and 0.0981. The energy output by thepower multiplied by DT and the total number of hours in the year, less 5% downtime.'Downtime' is the time when the plant is unavailable through malfunction,maintenance or shortage of water.In table 3.2 the River discharge shows the river discharge less the reservedflow. After some iterative calculations, it was decided to have as design flow, thecorresponding to the 50% exceedence - 46 m3 /s - with a rated head 6.45 m. Thecurve head-river discharge is reflected in line 4 (Head), and the flow going trhoughthe turbine is shown in line 5, function of river discharge and net head. The turbine,a double regulated Kaplan, will have an installed power of 2.450 kW. The calculationprocedure is clearly explicited in the table.3.5.3 Peaking operationElectricity prices at peak hours are substantially higher than in off-peak hours,hence the interest in providing an extended forebay or pound, big enough tostore the water necessary to operate, preferably in peak hours. To compute thisvolume considering that:QR = river flow (m3/s)QD = rated flow (m3/s)QP = flow in peak hours (m3/s)QOP = flow in off-peak hours (m3/s)tP = daily peak hourstOP = daily off-peak hours (24 - tP)Qres = reserved flow (m3/s)Qtmin = minimum technical flow of turbines (m3/s)H = headThe needed storage volume V will be given by:

s < the flow available to operate in off-peak hours will be:Qop24 QR Qres tpQPtopQmin=

>b g3.6 Firm energyA run-of-river scheme cannot, in general, guarantee a firm energy. On the contrarya group of small hydro run-of-river schemes, located in different basins of a countrypossibly can, because the low flow seasons may not occur at the same time.If a small hydro scheme has been developed to supply energy to an isolatedarea, the rated flow should be the one corresponding in the FDC to the exceedenceprobability of, at least, 90%. But even in these conditions the electricity supplycannot be guaranteed 90% of the time, because the FDC is related to the longterm and does not necessarily apply in dry years.82 Layman`s Guidebook83Chapter 3. The water resource and its potentialBibliography1. Jos Llamas, "Hidrologa General. Principios y Aplicaciones". Servicio Edito-rial de la Universidad del Pas Vasco, 1933.2. ISO 1100-1:1996 Measurement of liquid flow in open channels - Part 1: Esta-blishment and operation of a gauging station3. ISO/DIS 1100-2 Measurement of liquid flow in open channels -- Part 2:Determination of the stage-discharge relation (Revision of ISO 1100-2:1982)4. ISO 2537:1988 Liquid flow measurement in open channels -- Rotating elementcurrent-meters5. ISO 955-1:1994 Measurement of liquid flow in open channels -- Tracer dilutionmethods for the measurement of steady flow - Part 1:General6 ISO 3846:1989 Liquid flow measurement in open channels by weirs and flumes- Rectangular broad-crested weirs.7 ISO 3847:1977: Liquid flow measurement in open channels by weirs and flumes- End-depth method for estimation of flow in rectangular channels with a freeoverfall8 ISO 4359-1983 Liquid flow measurement in open channels: Rectangular,trapezoidal and U-shaped flumes9 ISO 4360:1984 Liquid flow measurement in open channels by weirs and flumes-- Triangular profile weirs10 ISO 4362:1992 Measurement of liquid flow in open channels -- Trapezoidalprofil84 Layman`s Guidebook4.0 Introduction.Adequate head and flow are necessary requirements for hydro generation.Consequently site selection is conditioned by the existence of both requirements.For the flow, chapter 3 lists the addresses of the international and nationalorganisations where stream data are recorded, underlining the availability ofspecialised databases. With the European Atlas of Small Scale HydropowerResources, by introducing the catchment geographic definition, the mean flow andthe Flow Duration Curve for any specific site may be estimated. If the scheme islocated in a country where databases for the Atlas do not exist, one of themethodologies detailed in the chapter 3 may help to get the required results.The gross head may be rapidly estimated, either by field surveying or by using theGPSs (Global Positioning System) or by ortophotographic techniques. With theaid of the engineering hydraulic principles brought out in chapter 2 the net headmay be computed. Flow and head estimation should no longer be a problem.Nevertheless, the selection of the most appropriate technical solution for the sitewill be the result of a lengthy, iterative process, where the topography and theenvironmental sensibility of the site, are most important. That is why a thoroughknowledge of the scheme is needed to avoid dangerous failures in the operationof the plant. Surveying technologies are undergoing a revolutionary change, andthe use of the technologies mentioned above may greatly assist in scheme designand reduce its cost.4.1 CartographyIn the industrialised countries maps to the required scale are usually available.The E.U. territory has been or is being digitised, and cartography at scale aslarge as 1:5 000 is already available. On the other hand, in the developing countries,the developer will be fortunate if he can find maps at 1:25 000.Aerial photographs of topography, can be substituted for maps if they cannot befound at the required scale. However aerial photographs are unlike maps in oneimportant respect. A map has a uniform or controlled variable scale the latterbeing dependent on the choice of map projection. The aerial photograph, on theother hand, does not have a constant or uniformly changing scale. Aside from lensimperfections, which for all practical purposes can be considered negligible, twomajor factors are responsible for variations in the scale of a photograph: thetopographical relief land, no matter how flat, is never horizontal and the tilt of theoptical axis of the camera.Modern cameras remove distortion resulting from their axial tilt. Furthermore aerialphotographs can be viewed stereoscopically or in three dimensions. The stereoscopiceffect enables the geologist to identify rock types, determine geologic structures,and detecting slope instability and the engineer gather data necessary for dam,open channels and penstock construction.4. Site evaluation methodologies86 Layman`s GuidebookDepending on the required accuracy, the digitised photographs can be geocoded(tied to a coordinate system and map projection) and orthorectified. Distortion fromthe camera lens is removed by using ground control points from maps, survey dataor client's GPS vectors. This is a very cost-effective way to orthorectify aerialphotographs. Resolutions of 30 cm to one metre can be expected with digitalortophotos. Both hard copy and digital ortophotos in diskettes can be produced.With those maps is possible to locate the intake, trace the open channel and thepenstock and locate the powerhouse, with precision enough for the feasibilitystudies and even for the phase of bidding. With stereoscopic photographs geologicproblems can often be spotted, specially those concerning slope stability, thatcan cause dangerous situations.4.2 Geotechnical studiesFrequently, the need to proceed with detailed geological studies of the site isunderestimated. In many cases with regrettable consequences seepage underthe weir, open channel slides etc.Fortunately in the E.U. member states and in many other countries all over theworld, good geological maps permit estimates, in a first approach, of the securityof the dam foundations, the stability of the slopes and the permeability of theterrain. However sometimes this general information should be complementedwith fieldwork of drilling and sampling.Hydraulic structures should be founded on level foundations, with adequate sideslopes and top widths, not subject to stability problems. There are a good numberof slope stability computer programs, ranging from a simple two-dimensionalapproach to the sophisticated three-dimensional, full colour graphic analysis. Thecatalogue of failures, especially in channel design is so large that a minimumgeomorphologic study of the terrain should be recommended for the first phaseof the project. The problem is especially acute in high mountain schemes, wherethe construction may be in the weathered surface zone, affected by differentgeomorphologic features such as soil creep, solifluction, rotational and planarsoil slides and rock falls.The weir and its corresponding reservoir can be affected by the instability of thesuperficial formations that can be present within its zone of influence, but at thesame time the pond itself can affect these same formations. If the weir has to befounded on a unconsolidated ground the variation of water level can generateinstability on the reservoir's wetted slopes.Along the open channel many geomorphologic features can adversely affect itsselected line which, together with a steep slope of the terrain, may lead to potentialinstability. Colluvial formations, product of the surface mechanical weathering ofthe rock masses, and solifluction processes, very active in high mountainenvironments where the subsoil is seasonally or perennially wet, are some of thefeatures that can compromise channel stability. Drainage treatments, benchconstructions and gunite treatments, among many others, may be recommended.87 Chapter 4. Site evaluation methodologiesAt the end of the canal the forebay acts as a mini-reservoir for the penstock.Frequently, authorities require that all the water retaining embankment sectionsundergo stability analysis regardless of their configuration.The layout of the penstock, usually placed on a steep slope, poses problemsboth for its anchoring blocks and because its visual impact.Deep in the valley, frequently built on an old river terrace, the powerhousefoundation poses problems that many times only can be solved by using techniquesas up today as the jet grouting (see 4.2.2.4).4.2.1 Methodologies to be usedWithin geological science, there is a wide spectrum of geomorphologic techniquesthat can be used including the following most common ones:PhotogeoIogy.As mentioned above photogrammetry at scales from 1:10 000 to 1:5 000 -allows the geologist to identify rock types, determine geologic structures, anddetect slope instability.GeomorphoIogic mapsThe result of photogrammetric analysis complemented with the results of thefield survey must be combined on a Geomorphologic Map. This map, based on atopographic one, drawn at a scale between 1:10 000 and 1:5 000, duly classifiedusing simple symbols, should show all the surface formations affecting theproposed hydraulic structures.Laboratory anaIysisTraditional laboratory tests such as soil grading and classification, and tri-axialconsolidation facilitate the surface formation classification, to be included in theabove mentioned map.GeophysicaI studiesA geophysical investigation either electric or seismic by refraction will contributeto a better knowledge of the superficial formation's thickness, the location of thelandslide sections, the internal water circulation, and the volumetric importanceof potential unstable formations.StructuraI geoIogicaI anaIysisAlthough not properly a geomorphologic technology it can help to solve problems inthe catchment area and in those cases where hydraulic conduits must be tunnels inrock massifs. The stability of the rock and seepage in the foundation of hydraulicstructures are problems that can be solved by this methodology, avoiding dramaticincidents during the operation.Direct investigations. BorehoIe driIIingThis is uncommon for small hydro scheme development. However when thedam or weir has to be founded in unconsolidated strata, a drilling programme,followed by laboratory tests on the samples extracted is essential. Some of theserecommended tests are:88 Layman`s Guidebook Permeability tests in boreholes, such as Lugeon or Low Pressure Test, to defi-ne the water circulation in the foundation. Laboratory tests to determine the compression strength of the samples to de-fine their consolidations characteristics.Complementing the above tests a geophysical refraction seismic essay to definethe modulus of dynamic deformation of the rocky massif in depth can berecommended in the case of high dams..4.2.2 Methodologies. The study of a practical case.A short report on the geomorphologic techniques used in the Cordianesscheme, a high mountain scheme located in the Central Massif of Picos deEuropa (Leon, Spain) will help to demonstrate the scope of the above mentionedstudies. Figure 4.1 is a schematic representation of the site, which includes: A gravity weir 11.5 meters high over foundations A reservoir with a storage capacity of 60 000 m3 An open channel 2475 m long (776 m are in tunnel) A forebay at the end of the tunnel A 1.4 m diameter penstock, 650 m long with a 190 m drop A powerhouse4.2.2.1 The weirInternational regulations require that if there is a potential for direct shear failureor whenever sliding is possible along joints or faults, rock foundations must beanalysed for stability. When necessary additional rock excavation may be requiredor the rock mass must be anchored.Figure 4.2 shows the weir location and illustrates the entirely different structuresof both slopes: the left one, steeper, follows the nearly vertically bedded slate89 Chapter 4. Site evaluation methodologiesformation; the right one less steep is associated to a colluvial formation.Figure 4.3 shows the geological complexity of the colluvial formation. The boreholedrilling B-1 illustrates the existence of an alluvial terrace under the colluvial formation.Each formation behaves in a different way to the requirements of the weir foundation.90 Layman`s Guidebook4.2.2.2 The open channelFigure 4.4 shows a geomorphologic scheme of the channel trace. Two largeindependent unstable zones (b and c) can be seen in the right side of the river.Photographs 4.1 and 4.2 show a general view of the right-side slope and the localinstabilities generated during the excavation works, just as a detail of one of theseinstabilities. Photograph 4.3 shows one of the existing sliding scarps before thebeginning of the works.Photo 4.191 Chapter 4. Site evaluation methodologiesThe foundation of the channel should meet two requirements: must be stable. Channels are rigid structures and do not permit deformations. should be permeable. Channels do not support thrusts or uplift pressures.The geologic studies should aim to avoid settlements in the channel and to provideadequate drainage to hinder the thrust and uplift stresses. The study should concludewith a recommendation to guarantee the stability and suppress the uplift pressures.Photo 4.2Photo 4.392 Layman`s Guidebook4.2.2.3 The channel in tunnel.The tunnel construction must comply with the following requirements: The excavation will be conditioned by the geologic formations that must traverse,either a rock massif or a superficial formation. The tunnel, being a hydraulic channel should be stable and watertightConsequently the geologic formations existing in the massif to be traversed mustbe known in detail.Photograph 4.4 shows a view of the Cordianes colluvium, under which the tunnelruns from the point marked in figure 4.4 with the word "tunnel. Figure 4.5 showsPhoto 4.493 Chapter 4. Site evaluation methodologiesa schematic cut of the tunnel under the colluvium and figure 4.6 illustrates theconcrete lining conforming the final section of the canal.The excavation works were extremely difficult due to the large variety andheterogeneity of the blocks, which varied in size from simple stones to blocks ofseveral cubic meters. The use of large explosive charges was out of place here.Excavation by tunnelling machines unfeasible. The excavation had to proceedmeter by meter using small explosive charges to reduce the size of the blockswhich could not be handled (Photograph 4.5).The concrete lining was also difficult. Zone 2 in figure 4.6 was filled by injectinggrout. In fact this injection not only filled the empty space but also enclosed thesupporting structure and reinforced the loose terrain around the tunnel. Thisterrain is very permeable so to avoid lateral pressures or uplift pressures a drainingsystem was put in place.94 Layman`s GuidebookThe construction of tunnels through rocky massifs should take intoaccount two important geologic characteristics: The lithologic variation along its trace, that can decisively influencethe construction method to be used. The structural stability of the massif along the trace. Even if themassif is lithologically coherent the distribution of the potentialdiscontinuities stratification planes, joints, fissures - will be farfrom homogeneous. Once again the knowledge of all thosediscontinuities must be based on a detailed structural geologicalstudy.As well as the relatively small discontinuities referred above, thedesigner should also deal with the large tectonic discontinuities -largebendings, faults, invert faults- that not only affect the work itself butalso the future operation of the canal.Figure 4.7 shows a thrust fault, present in the La Rienda tunnel, secondpart of the tunnel of Cordianes, close to the forebay built right at theend of the tunnel. Due to the strains and deformations supported in thepast by this mass of rocks, the rocks originally sound were completelyaltered. Its response to the excavation was of course very differentfrom the response of the rest of the massif. Only by knowing in time thepresence of this fault could the tunnel be excavated without unexpectedincidents. Figure 4.8 shows in greater detail how the tunnel wasexcavated through the fault zone. As photographs 4.6 and 4.7 illustrate,the supporting structure during the tunnel construction was very differentin this area to the one used in the rest of the work.4.2.2.4 The powerhouseDue to the presence of large and heavy equipment units the powerhousestability must be completely secured. Settlements cannot be acceptedin the powerhouse. If the geologic condition of the ground cannotguarantee the stability of the foundation it must be strengthened.Photo 4.6Photo 4.7Photo 4.595 Chapter 4. Site evaluation methodologiesIf the powerhouse is founded on rock, the excavation work will eliminate the su-perficial weathered layer, leaving a sound rock foundation. If the powerhouse isto be located on fluvial terraces near the riverbanks which do not offer a goodfoundation then the ground must be reconditioned.The traditional cement grouting presents some difficulties and in any case its resultsnever will be satisfactory when the terrain is as heterogenous and permeable asexists in fluvial terraces. A new injection technique, jet grouting, can guarantee the96 Layman`s Guidebookterrain consolidation, replacing alluvial sediments by an injected curtain. Thetechnique, widely used by the DOE (Department of Energy of the U.S) to cut theseepage in the underground storage reservoir for toxic wastes, is however veryexpensive at present. Figure 4.9 illustrates the results of the jet-grouting operationwhich was performed to reinforce the terrain supporting the powerhouse.4.3 Learning from failuresTwo well-known experts, Bryan Leyland of Australia and Freddy Isambert fromFrance, presented to HIDROENERGIA95 Conference, that was held at Milan,two independent papers dealing with the topic "lessons from failures. Mr Leylandquoting Mr Winston Churchill "he who ignores history is doomed to repeat it-claims that if one does not want to repeat the mistakes of others, the reasons fortheir failures must studied and understood. And according to Mr Issambert "casestudies have shown that a number of small hydro plants have failed because theywere poorly designed, built or operated. The authors presented, with the aid ofgraphics and photographs, several examples of schemes that failed in thecommissioning of the plant or later in the operation, and produces considerableloss of money and dramatic delays.Professor Mosony wrote in ESHA Info no. 15, "a fair and open discussion aboutfailures is indispensable in order to learn from failures and, consequently to avoid97 Chapter 4. Site evaluation methodologiestheir repetition. And quoting Marcus Tullius Ciceron (106-43 BC) "Every humanbeing can make a mistake, but only the idiot persists in repeating his mistake.Fromthe accounts of failures reported at HIDROENERGIA, together with more than 50others described in the ASCE publication "Lessons Learned from the Design,Construction and Operation of Hydroelectric Facilities, of which 28 of them concernschemes of less than 10 MW capacity, those have been selected for discussionbelow. They demonstrate the importance of studying in depth, the stability ofcanals and the effects of uplift pressure on hydraulic structures.Ruahihi canaI faiIure (New ZeaIand)As shown in figure 4.10 the scheme had a 2000 m canal laid along a side slope,leading to 750 m of concrete and steel penstocks. The canal was excavated in softignimbrite (debris from a volcanic explosion) and lined with a type of volcanic clay.The brown ash dried and cracked during construction but due to its unusualcharacteristics, the cracks did not seal when the canal was filled. So water leakedinto the ignimbrite below. When these leaks appeared perforated pipes were drivenin to drain the bottom of the slope. This hid the problem and also made it worsebecause the leaking water caused caverns to form in the fill.On the day after the scheme was officially opened, a large section of the canalsuddenly collapsed. Photograph 4.8 illustrates the magnitude of the catastrophe.Many options were examined and finally it was decided that the only viable optionwas to replace the failed section of canal with 1100 m of pipes. This increased thelength of the penstocks from 750 m to 1850 m and required that water hammerpressures have to be reduced because the original concrete pipes could onlywithstand a very limited overpressure.98 Layman`s GuidebookIt was necessary to modify the relief valves and the inlet valves so that therewould only be a 3% pressure rise under the worst conditions. A surge chamberwas not an option because the ground could not take the extra weight. Fortunatelythe turbine manufacturer was very cooperative and had faith in the ability of hisrelief valves to limit the pressure rise to 3%, which they did. The refurbishmentwas completed ahead of time and under budget.The lessons learned were: the characteristics of volcanic materials are highly variable and oftenundesirable; when a canal leaks, be sure the problem is fully understood before repairscommence; when the alternative is to abandon a failed scheme, consider the seeminglyimpossible - there may not be a lot to lose!Photo 4.8Photo 4.999 Chapter 4. Site evaluation methodologiesLa Marea canaI faiIure (Spain)The La Marea scheme has a spiral Francis turbine of 1 100 kW installed capacity fora discharge of 1.3 m3/s and a 100-m head. As shown in figure 4.11 the schemeincludes a small weir for the water intake, provided with a ladder fish pass. From theintake a rectangular canal built in reinforced concrete (3 x 2 m section) is followedby another 600 m long canal in tunnel. At the outlet of the tunnel a reservoir wasbuilt to store water for peak operation. The reservoir was built by compressing a mixof sand and clay, and unfortunately proved to be insufficiently watertight. From thereservoir another canal, built with prefabricated sections of concrete with thin steelplates between, brings the water to the forebay, located 100-m above thepowerhouse.The canal lays on a steep slope on strongly weathered sandstone. Heavy rainwas pouring over the canal both during its construction and during itscommissioning. Immediately after opening the intake gate, the reservoir was filledand the water began to seep into the terrain. The wetted sandstone could notresist the shear stresses and a landslide broke the reservoir embankment(photograph 4.9), and large masses of material reached the river, and throughthe river, the seacoast. The reservoir was replaced by a construction in reinforcedconcrete which, up to the present, has served no useful purpose. Later on, thesecond section of the canal the prefabricated reach- started to leak. The terrainbecame saturated and, unable to resist the shear stresses, failed in a rotationalslide. About 200 m of canal were replaced by a low-pressure welded steel pipethat up to now has been performing adequately. The pipe runs under a dailystorage pound, waterproofed by a thermo-welded plastic sheet, and ends in theforebay.The lessons learned were: Weathered sandstone gives bad results against landslide, specially on slopeswith an angle over 35 to the horizontal. Hydraulic canals should be built to guarantee their waterproofness; alternatively adraining system should be devised so the water leakage can not affect the terrain. The replacement of an open canal by a low pressure pipe on a steep slope may100 Layman`s Guidebookbe the best option, because it will be watertight and because its anchorage onthe slope will require only a few strong points.Seepage under a weir (France)This case concerns a small weir, which is the structure furthest upstream of a 600 kWproject comprising a buried culvert, a penstock and a powerhouse. The operatingpersonnel had noticed minor leakage at the downstream toe of the dam. The smallreservoir was emptied, and a trench was excavated so that the contact between thestructure and the foundation could be examined. It was then revealed that a conduithad formed between the upstream and the downstream faces of the weir (photo4.11), which was actually founded on permeable deposits without a cutoff trench. Theweir in this condition would have eventually failed by undermining the foundation.The key issues to learn from this case were the lack of a geomorphologic surveyand inadequate supervision of the design and construction of the weir.101 Chapter 4. Site evaluation methodologiesThe hydrauIic canaI in a Iow-head 2 MW schemeThe hydraulic canal - 5 m wide and 500 m long goes along the river and closeto it. The river was known to experience frequent flash floods. On one particularday, a flood occurred which was later calculated to be a 100 year event. Whenthe flood occurred, the turbines were stopped and all the gates closed. Theheadrace channel had been almost emptied by leakage, and the channel wasdestroyed by uplift pressure (photo 4.12).In this case the key technical issues were: hydraulics, structural stability anddesign.Photo 4.11Photo 4.12102 Layman`s GuidebookThere are other cases that could be described to show the effects of misjudgmentduring either the design or the construction phase. Such case studies show thenumber and diversity of parameters that can cause failures. It is also unfortunatelyevident that design, construction and site supervision are often carried out bycompanies which may offer lower costs, but have little experience of hydraulicworks.5.1 Structures for storage and water intake5.1.1 DamsThe dam is a fundamental element in conventional hydraulic schemes, where it isused to create a reservoir to store water and to develop head. In relatively flatterrain, a dam, by increasing the level of the water surface, can develop the headnecessary to generate the required energy. The dam can also be used to store,during high flow seasons the water required to generate energy in dry seasons.Notwithstanding this, due to the high cost of dams and their appurtenances, theyare seldom used in small hydro schemes.If a scheme is connected to an isolated net, and if the topography is favourable, adam can be built to store excess water when the flow is high or the demand low tomake it available at times of low flow or increased demand.Where a reservoir is built for other purposes irrigation, water supply to a city,flood regulation, etc- it can be used by constructing a plant at the base of the damto generate energy as an additional benefit.5.1.2 WeirsThe large majority of small hydro schemes are of the run-of-river type, whereelectricity is generated from discharges larger than the minimum required tooperate the turbine. In these schemes a low diversion structure is built on thestreambed to divert the required flow whilst the rest of the water continues tooverflow it. When the scheme is large enough this diversion structure becomes asmall dam, commonly known as a weir, whose role is not to store the water but toincrease the level of the water surface so the flow can enter into the intake.Weirs should be constructed on rock and in their simplest version consist of a fewboulders placed across the stream (figure 5.1). When the rock is deep, excavationis needed, and a sill constructed of gabions - steel mesh baskets filled with stones-can be used (figure 5.2).In larger structures the weir may be a small earth dam, with an impervious core5. Hydraulic structures104 Layman`s Guidebookwhich extends well into the impervious foundation, located in the central portion ofthe dam. (Figure 5.3). This core is generally constructed of compacted clayey mate-rial. If this material is not available in the site a properly welded geotextiles sheet mustcover the upstream embankment to provide the required waterproofing (figure 5.4)If clayey material doesn't exist in the site but sand and gravel are easily found,the construction of a concrete dam can be considered. If the stream is subjectedto sudden floods that require the construction of large spillways, very expensiveto build in an earth dam, concrete dams, where the spillways is easily integrated(photo 5.1) may be advisable. However if the scheme is located on a seismicarea, rigid structures such as concrete dams should be avoided, and earth damsare more suitable. In very cold climates the required precautions to be takenwith the freshly poured concrete can be so costly that the construction of a con-crete dam is not feasible.According to the ICOLD (International Committee of Large Dams) a dam isconsidered "small when its height, measured from its foundation level to thecrest, does not exceed15 m, the crest length is less than 500 m and the storedwater is less than1 million cubic meters. These parameters are important, becauseof the complicated administrative procedures associated with the construction oflarge dams. The great majority of small dams in small hydro schemes are of thegravity type, commonly founded on solid rock and where their stability is due totheir own weight. If a dam is less than 10 m high it can be built on earth foundations,but allowable stresses must not be exceeded and the possibility of piping due toPhoto 5.1105 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresseepage under the dam minimised, through the use of aprons or cut-offs. For thefoundation it will be necessary to know the shear strength, compressive strengthand Poisson's ratio.The dam must be stable for all possible loading conditions (figure 5.5): hydrostaticforces on the upstream and downstream faces; hydrostatic uplift acting underthe base of the dam; forces due to silt deposited in the reservoir and in contactwith the dam; earthquakes forces that are assumed to act both horizontally andvertically through the centre of gravity of the dam (if the dam is located in aseismically active zone); earthquake forces induced by the relative movementsof the dam and reservoir etc.Since the dam must be safe from overturning under all possible load conditionstherefore the contact stress between the foundation and the dam must be greaterthan zero at all points. To assure this condition the resultant of all horizontal andvertical forces included the weight of the dam- must pass through the middleone-third of the base. The upstream face is usually vertical whereas thedownstream face has a constant inclination. It is also necessary to guaranteethat the dam doesn't slide, so the static friction coefficient all the horizontal forcesdivided by all the vertical ones- must remain between 0.6 and 0.75.5.1.2.1 Devices to raise the water level.To raise the water level slightly behind the weir to ensure adequate depth of waterat the intake, without endangering the flooding of the upstream terrain, flashboardsmay be installed on the crest of the weir (photo 5.2). The flashboards are commonlymade of wood and supported by steel pins embedded in steel sockets pipes cutdown to size- in the spillway crest (figure 5.6 a). The flashboards have to beremoved by hand during flood flows so that high water levels do not flood theupstream terrain, an operation that in such circumstances is very difficult. Thearticulated flashboard illustrated in figure 5.6.b is somewhat easier to remove.106 Layman`s GuidebookIn low head schemes with integral intake and powerhouse see figure 1.3- thebest way to increase the head without risking upstream flooding, is the sectorgate. A hydraulic system or an electric motor opens the gate, so that the waterpasses underneath.In large installations, but also sometimes in small ones , it is advisable to placefusegates, such as those supplied by Hydroplus1. In the event of a major flood,when the water reaches a pre-set level, one or more of the fusegates basicallyhinged structures- will tilt to increase the section of the spillway (photo 5.3).Another method, capable of remote control, is the inflatable weir, which employsa reinforced rubber bladder instead of concrete, steel or wood flashboards. Thisoffers an alternative to more conventional methods of weir construction, with theinherent advantages of low initial cost, simple operation and minimal maintenance.In effect, inflatable weirs are flexible gates in the form of a reinforced, sheet-rubber bladder inflated by air or water, anchored to a concrete foundation (figure5.7) by anchor bolts embedded into the foundation. Like any other gate, theinflatable weir needs a mechanism by which it is opened and closed. The weir israised when filled with water or air under pressure. An air compressor or a waterpump is connected, via a pipe, to the rubber bladder. When the bladder is filledthe gate is raised (photo 5.4); when it is deflated the weir lies flat on its founda-tion, in a fully opened position. The system becomes economic when the width ofthe weir is large in relation to the height.When the management and operational safety of the system is rather critical, theuse of inflatable weirs can give substantial advantages over conventional systems.An electronic sensor monitors the upstream water level and the inner pressure ofthe bladder. A microprocessor maintains a constant level in the intake entranceby making small changes in the inner pressure of the bladder. To avoid floodingland, a similar device can regulate the inflatable weir regulated to correspond to apre-set upstream water level.Photo 5.2107 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresInflatable gate control systems can be designed to fully deflate the bladderautomatically in rivers prone to sudden water flow surges. On a typical weir, twometers high and thirty meters wide, this can be done in less than thirty minutes.Photo 5.5 illustrates a new type of inflatable weir patented by Obermeyer Hydro-where the sheet rubber incorporates a steel panel that behaves as a flashboard, whichis quickly and easily manageable in the event of sudden floods. By controlling thepressure in the rubber blade the steel panels may be more or less inclined, varying thelevel of the water surface. The system incorporates an additional advantage: the rubberblade is always protected against boulders carried during flood flows; buoyancy cau-ses heavy boulders to loose a portion of their weight in water, making it easier for theflood flow to carry them downstream. The free space between panels or between pa-nel and the buttress are closed by a synthetic rubber flap anchored to one of the panels2.Photo 5.4Photo 5.3108 Layman`s Guidebook5.1.3 SpillwaysIn the south of Europe, with a clear difference between dry and wet season flows,flood flows can have catastrophic effects on whatever structure is built in thestream. To avoid damage the excess water must be safely discharged over thedam or weir. For this reason carefully designed overflow passages are incorporatedin dams as part of the structure. These passages are known as "spillways. Dueto the high velocities of the spilling water, some form of energy dissipation isusually provided at the base of the spillway.Photo 5.5Photo 5.6109 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresThe commonest type of spillway is the overflow gravity type (photo 5.6). Basicallyit is an open channel with a steep slope and with a rounded crest at its entry. Tominimise the pressure on the surface of the spillway the profile of the crest shouldfollow the same curve as the underside of the free-falling water nappe overflowinga sharp crest weir. This trajectory varies with the head, so the crest profile is theright one only for the design head Hs. If H>Hs negative pressure zones tend todevelop along the profile and cavitation may occur. Recent work suggests thatfortunately, separation will not occur until H>3 Hs. The U.S. Waterways Experi-mental Station3 has provided a set of profiles that have been found to agree withactual prototype measurements.The discharge may be calculated by the equationQ=CLH3/2 (5.1)where C is the coefficient of discharge, L is the length of the spillwaycrest and H is the static head. The coefficient of discharge C isdetermined by scale model tests; its value normally ranges between1.66 for broad crested weirs to 2.2 for a weir designed with theoptimum profile, when the head equals the design head.In some small hydropower schemes e.g. small scheme in an irrigationcanal- there is not enough space to locate a conventional spillway. Inthese cases, U shaped (figure 5.8 and photo 5.7) or labyrinth weirs(figure 5.9) should help to obtain a higher discharge in the availablelength.Alternatively where space available for the spillway is limited, a siphonspillway or a shaft spillway may be used. Both solutions help to keepthe upstream water level within narrow limits. A siphon spillway isbasically a curved enclosed duct as illustrated in Fig 5.10 4. When thewater level rises above the elbow of the siphon the water begins toflow, down the conduit just as in an overflow spillway, but it is when itrises further that the siphon is primed and increases the dischargeconsiderably. Usually siphons are primed when the water level reachesor passes the level of the crown, but there are designs where primingoccurs when the upstream level has risen only to about one third ofthe throat height.Photo 5.7110 Layman`s GuidebookIf badly designed, the siphon process can become unstable. At the beginning thesiphon discharges in a gravity mode, but when the siphon is primed the dischargesuddenly increases. Consequently the reservoir level drops, the siphon is de-primed and the discharge is reduced. The level of the reservoir increases anewuntil the siphon primes again, and the cycle of events is repeated indefinitely,causing severe surges and stoppages. Multiple siphons with differential crestheights or aerated siphons can be the solution to this problem.When the siphon is primed the flow through a siphon spillway is governed, as inpenstocks, by Bernoulli's equation. Assuming that the velocity of water in theconduit is the same at the inlet and outlet, the head loss may be calculated fromthe formulae in Chapter 2, paragraph 2.2.1.If the pressure at the crown of the siphon drops below the vapour pressure, thewater vaporises forming a large number of small vapour cavities which entrainedin the flow condense again into liquid in a zone of higher pressure. Thisphenomenon is known as cavitation and it can be extremely damaging. To avoidit, the distance between the crown of the siphon and the maximum level at thereservoir, depending on height above sea level and prevailing barometric pressure,111 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresshould normally not exceed 5 m. Further details on thiskind of spillway can be found in the literature6.Shaft or "glory hole spillways are rarely used in small scale-hydro. As illustrated in Fig 5.11 a shaft spillway incorporatesa funnel-shaped inlet to increase the length of the crest, aflared transition which conforms to the shape of the nappe asin the overflow spillway though it is sometimes stepped toensure aeration, a vertical shaft and an outlet tunnel thatsometimes has a slight positive slope to ensure that at theend it never flows full. Figure 5.12, reproduced from Inversin5illustrates a shaft installed to evacuate the excess water in achannel, where a side-spillway could generate a landslide bysaturating the terrain. The US Bureau of Reclamation reports(USBR) 6,7 describe the design principles for these spillways.5.1.4 Energy dissipatorsThe discharge from a spillway outlet is usually supercritical and so may producesevere erosion at the toe of the dam, especially if the streambed is of silt or clay.To avoid such damage, a transition structure known as a stilling basin must beconstructed to induce the formation of a hydraulic jump, where the water flowchanges from supercritical to subcritical. The USBR has published a set of curvesto be used in the design of stilling basins8.5.1.5 Low level outletsLow level outlets in small hydropower schemes are used to perform, together orindependently, the downstream release and the evacuation of the reservoir, either inan emergency or to permit dam maintenance. In general a low level-conduit with acone valve at the exit or a sliding gate at the inlet is enough to perform both functions.At the exit, if the flow is supercritical, the provision of energy dissipators should beconsidered.5.1.6 River diversion during constructionIn small hydropower schemes the construction may be completed, in some ca-ses, within the dry season, but in many others, diversion arrangements will benecessary. Suitable diversion structures include the following:112 Layman`s GuidebookGabions with geotextiles on the upstream facesEarth dikes with riprap protectionInflatable weirsSheetpile diversion damsThe techniques of their construction and their practical use require the advice ofspecialised engineers.5.2 Waterways5.2.1 Intake structuresThe Glossary of Hydropower Terms -1989 defines the intake as "a structure todivert water into a conduit leading to the power plant. Following the ASCECommittee on Hydropower Intakes11, the water intake in this handbook is definedas a structure to divert water to a waterway not specifying what type of waterway:a power channel or a pressure conduit- and reserving the word forebay or powerintake, to those intakes directly supplying water to the turbine, via a penstock.A water intake must be able to divert the required amount of water into the powercanal or into the penstock without producing a negative impact on the localenvironment and with the minimum possible headloss. The intake serves as atransition between a stream that can vary from a trickle to a raging torrent, and acontrolled flow of water both in quality and quantity. Its design, based on geological,hydraulic, structural and economic considerations, requires special care to avoidunnecessary maintenance and operational problems that cannot be easilyremedied and would have to be tolerated for the life of the project.A water intake designer should take three criteria into consideration: Hydraulic and structural criteria common to all kind of intakes Operational criteria e.g. percentage of diverted flow, trash handling, sedimentexclusion, etc- that vary from intake to intake Environmental criteria fish diversion systems, fishpasses- characteristics ofeach project.Even if every year new ideas for intake design are proposed advances inmodelling, new construction materials, etc- the fundamental hydraulic and structuraldesign concepts have not changed much in many years, and are not likely tochange in the future. Over the years, many intakes have been designed; vastquantities of trash have been removed; and large amounts of sediments havebeen sluiced. From all that accumulated experience we now know what worksand what does not work, and this experience together with fundamental hydraulicprinciples, the designer can develop better and effective intakes, precluding futureincidents.113 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structures5.2.1.1 Water intake typesThe first thing for the designer to do is to decide whatkind of intake the scheme needs. Notwithstanding thelarge variety of existing intakes, these can be classifiedaccording to the following criteria: The intake supplies water directly to the turbine via apenstock (figure 5.1). This is what is known as powerintake or forebay. The intake supplies water to other waterways powercanal, flume, tunnel, etc- that usually end in a powerintake (figure 1.1 Chapter 1). This is known as aconveyance intake The scheme doesn't have any conventional intake,but make use of other devices, like siphon intakesor "french intakes that will be described later.In multipurpose reservoirs built for irrigation, drinking waterabstraction, flood regulation, etc- the water can bewithdrawn through towers with multiple level ports,permitting selective withdrawal from the reservoir's verticalstrata (figure 5.13) or through bottom outlets (figure 5.14)The siphon intake (figure 5.15) renders intake gatesunnecessary, and the inlet valves (provided each unithas its own conduit) may also be eliminated, reducingthe total cost by 25-40 per cent, and reducing the siltintake. The water flow to the turbine can be shut offmore quickly than in a gated intake, which is beneficialin a runaway condition. Photo 5.8 shows a siphonintake built on an existing dam, with very small civilworks. The siphon can be made of steel, or alternativelyin countries where the procurement of fabricated steelis difficult, in reinforced concrete, with the criticalsections lined in steel.114 Layman`s GuidebookThe "french" or drop intake (figure 5.16) is essentially a canal built in the stream-bed, stretching across it and covered by a trashrack with a slope greater than thestreambed slope. The trashrack bars are oriented in the direction of the streamflow.Photo 5.9 shows a drop intake installed in a mountain stream in Asturias (Spain). InFrance EDF has improved this type of intake, placing the bars as cantileversto avoidthe accumulation of small stones commonly entrained by the water (figure 5.17)The Coanda type screen is an advanced concept of the drop intake, incorporating the"Coanda effect, well known in the ore separation industry, to separate fish and debrisfrom clean water. Essentially it consists of a weir with a downward sloping profiledsurface of stainless steel wire screen mesh on the downstream side and a flow collectionchannel below the mesh as in the drop intake. The mesh wires are held horizontal unlike the drop intake- and are of triangular section to provide an expanding waterpassage. Water drops through the mesh with debris and fish carried off the base of thescreen. The screen is capable of removing 90% of the solids as small as 0.5 mm, so aPhoto 5,8115 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuressilt basin and sediment ejection system can be omitted. The intake (photo 5.10) ispatented by AQUA SHEAR and distributed by DULAS11 in Europe.5.2.1.2 Intake locationThe location of the intake depends on a number of factors, such as submergence,geotechnical conditions, environmental considerations especially those relatedto fish life- sediment exclusion and ice formation where necessary.Photo 5.9Photo 5.10116 Layman`s GuidebookThe orientation of the intake entrance to the flow is a crucial factor in minimisingdebris accumulation on the trashrack, a source of future maintenance problemsand plant stoppages. The best disposition9 of the intake is with the screen at rightangles to the spillway (figure 5.1) so, that in flood seasons the flow entrains thedebris over its crest. The intake should not be located in an area of still water, farfrom the spillway, because the eddy currents common in such waters will entrainand accumulate trash at the entrance. If for any reason the intake entrance shouldbe parallel to the spillway, it is preferable to locate it close to the spillway so theoperator can push the trash away to be carried away by the spillway flow. (Seephoto 5.11 in a dry season where all the water went through the turbine)The water intake should be equipped with a trashrack to minimise the amount ofdebris and sediment carried by the incoming water; a settling basin where theflow velocity is reduced, to remove all particles over 0.2 mm; a sluicing system toflush the deposited silt, sand, gravel and pebbles with a minimum of water loss;and a spillway to divert the excess water. Spillways have been already consideredin depth in 5.1.3, as other components will be later.5.2.2 Power intakeThe power intake is a variant of the conventional intake, usually located at theend of a power canal, although sometimes it can replace it. Because it has tosupply water to a pressure conduit the penstock- its hydraulic requirements aremore stringent that those of a conveyance intake.In small hydropower schemes, even in high head ones, water intakes are hori-zontal, followed by a curve to an inclined or vertical penstock. The design dependson whether the horizontal intake is a component of a high head or a low headscheme. In low head schemes a good hydraulic design often more costly than aless efficient one- makes sense, because the head loss through the intake isPhoto 5.11117 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structurescomparatively large related to the gross head. In high head schemes, the valueof the energy lost in the intake will be small relatively to the total head and thecost of increasing the intake size to provide a lower intake velocity and a betterprofile may not be justified.In a power intake several components need consideration: Approach walls to the trashrack designed to minimise flow separation and headlosses Transition from rectangular cross section to a circular one to meet the entranceto the penstock Piers to support mechanical equipment including trashracks, and service gates Guide vanes to distribute flow uniformly Vortex suppression devicesThe velocity profile decisively influences the trashrack efficiency. The velocityalong the intake may vary, from 0.8 1.0 m/sec through the trashrack to 3 5 m/sec in the penstock. A good profile will achieve a uniform acceleration of the flow,minimising head losses. A sudden acceleration or deceleration of the flowgenerates additional turbulence with flow separation and increases the headlosses. Unfortunately a constant acceleration with low head losses requires acomplex and lengthy intake, which is expensive. A trade-off between cost andefficiency should be achieved. The maximum acceptable velocity dictates thepenstock diameter; a reasonable velocity of the flow approaching the trashrackprovides the dimensions of the rectangular section.The research department of "Energy, Mines and Resources of Canada10commissioned a study of entrance loss coefficients for small, low-head intakestructures to establishing guide lines for selecting optimum intakes geometries.The results showed that economic benefits increase with progressively smootherintake geometrics having multiplane roof transition planes prepared from flatformwork. In addition, it was found that cost savings from shorter and more compactintakes were significantly higher than the corresponding disbenefits from increasedhead losses.The analyses of cost/benefits recommend the design of a compact intake itappeared that the length of the intake was unlikely to be the major factorcontributing to the overall loss coefficient- with a sloping roof and convergingwalls (figure 5.18, alternative 2 in the study). The K coefficient of this transitionprofile was 0.19. The head loss (m) in the intake is given byDh = 0.19 v2/2g (5.2)where v is the velocity in the penstock (m/sec).A well-designed intake should not only minimise head losses but also percludevorticity. Vorticity should be avoided because it interferes with the good perfor-mance of turbines especially bulb and pit turbines. Vortices may effectively: Produce non-uniform flow conditions Introduce air into the flow, with unfavourable results on the turbines: vibration,cavitation, unbalanced loads, etc. Increase head losses and decrease efficiency Draw trash into the intake118 Layman`s GuidebookThe criteria to avoid vorticity are not well defined, and there is not a single formulathat adequately takes into consideration the possible factors affecting it. Accordingto the ASCE Committee on Hydropower Intakes, disturbances, which introducenon-uniform velocity, can initiate vortices. These include: Asymmetrical approach conditions Inadequate submergence Flow separation and eddy formation Approach velocities greater than 0.65 m/sec Abrupt changes in flow directionLack of sufficient submergence and asymmetrical approach seem to be thecommonest causes of vortex formation. An asymmetric approach (figure 5.19 a)is more prone to vortex formation than a symmetrical one (figure 5.19b). Providingthe inlet to the penstock is deep enough, and the flow undisturbed vortex formationis unlikely.According to Gulliver, Rindels and Liblom (1986) of St. Anthony Falls hydrauliclaboratories, vortices need not be expected provided (figure 5.19)119 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structures5 . 0 and 7 . 0 < = >gDJN D S F (5.3)After applying the above recommendations, if there is still vortex formation at theplant and it is impossible to increase the submergence of the penstock entranceor increase its diameter- the situation can be improved by a floating raft whichdisrupts the angular movement of the water near the surface (figure 5.19 d)5.2.3 Mechanical equipment5.2.3.1 Debris management in intakesOne of the major functions of the intake is to minimise the amount of debris andsediment carried by the incoming water, so trashracks are placed at the entranceto the intake to prevent the ingress of floating debris and large stones. A trashrackis made up of one or more panels, fabricated from a series of evenly spacedparallel metal bars. If the watercourse, in the flood season, entrains large debris,it is convenient to install, in front of the ordinary grill, a special one, with removableand widely spaced bars from 100 mm to 300 mm between bars- to reduce thework of the automatic trashrack cleaning equipmentTrashracks are fabricated with stainless steel or plastic bars. Since the plasticbars can be made in airfoil sections, less turbulence and lower head losses result.The bar spacing varies from a clear width of 12 mm for small high head Peltonturbines to a maximum of 150 mm for large propeller ones. The trashrack should120 Layman`s Guidebookhave a net area - the total area less the bars frontal area- so that the watervelocity does not exceed 0.75 m/s on small intakes, or 1.5 m/s on larger intakes,to avoid attracting floating debris to the trashrack. Trashracks can be either boltedto the support frame with stainless steel bolts or slid into vertical slots, to beremoved and replaced by stoplogs when closure for maintenance or repair isneeded. In large trashracks it must be assumed that the grill may be clogged andthe supporting structure must be designed to resist the total water pressure exertedover the whole area without excessive deformation.Photo 5.13Photo 5.12121 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresWhen the river entrains heavy debris, floating booms may be located ahead ofthe trashracks. The simplest boom consists of a series of floating pieces of timberconnected end to end with cables or chains. However modern booms are builtwith prefabricated sections of steel and plastic (photos 5.12 and 5.13) supportedby steel cables. Their location is critical, because their inward bowed configurationdoes not lend itself to a self-cleaning action during flood flows. Figure 5.20 reproduced from reference 11- shows a rather complex trash boom layout designedfor a dual-purpose: preventing boats passing over the spillway and protecting theadjacent intake. A section of the boom is hinged at one end of the fixed section sothat winches can handle the other end to let the trash pass downstream over thespillway, when large quantities are passing.The trashrack is designed so the approach velocity (V0) remains between 0.60 m/sand 1.50 m/s. The total surface of the screen will be given by the equation:SK b aa QJ= +FHG IKJ1 11 0 sin (5.4)Where: S = Total area of the submerged part of the screenQ = Rated flowV0 = Approach velocityb = Bar widtha = Space between bars122 Layman`s GuidebookK1 = Coefficient related to the partial clogging of the screen:no automatic raker 0.20-0.30;automatic raker with hourly programmer 0.40-0.60;automatic raker plus differential pressure sensor 0.80-0.85a = Angle of the screen with the horizontalFor computing head losses in clean trashracks, the Kirscmer formula, detailed inChapter 2, section 2.2.2.1, is commonly used. This formula is only valid when the123 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresflow approachs the screen at right angles. Otherwise the head losses increasewith the angle, and can be up to 18 times the value computed by the Kirchsmerformula. The additional head loss can be computed by the formulah K ba Jg

= FHG IKJ24 302/sin (5.5)where ha is the head loss in m, a angle between the flow and the perpendicular tothe screen (a max = 90 for screens located in the sidewall of a canal) and V0 andg there are the same values as in the Kirschmer formula. If the flow is not perpen-dicular to the screen it is preferable to use round bars instead of profiled wire.Anyhow it is more important to keep the screen free of clogging because thehead loss computed by the above formulae is insignificant when compared withthe headloss arising from a partial clogging of the screen.The trashrack should be removable for repair and maintenance and provided withfacilities to clean it. To facilitate the hand cleaning of the trashrack it should beinclined at an angle 30 from the horizontal although steeper angles are often used.Trashracks can be cleaned by hand up to 4 meters depth. A horizontal platformabove high-water level should be provided to facilitate the operation. On unattendedplants operated by remote control, mechanical rakers are used. The mechanicalraker can be designed to be operated either on a timed basis or on a head differentialbasis. The latter uses a sensor to detect the drop in head across the trashrack. Anaccumulation of trash on the trashrack creates an increased differential head acrossthe trashrack. The raker begins when a predetermined differential head is reached.The raker in figure 5.21 is operated through oleo-hydraulic cylinders. Thesecondary cylinder pushes out or retracts the raker, which rides on a hingedarm. The raker pushes out in its way down to the bottom of the screen and thenretracts to travel up along the screen. The raker itself is a series of prongsprotruding from a polyamide block that moves along the spaces between bars.The trash is conveyed to the top to be dumped on a conduit or on to a conveyor.If dumped into a conduit a small water pump deliversenough water to wash the trash along the canal. Theproblem of trash disposal must be solved case by case,bearing in mind that a trash raker can remove largeamount of debris.When the trashrack is very long the trash raker describedabove is assembled on a carriage that can move on railsalong the intake. Automatic control can be programmedto pass along the supporting structures without humanaid. Using telescopic hydraulic cylinders the raker canreach down to 10 m deep, which combined with the almostlimitless horizontal movement, makes it possible to cleanlarge surface screens (photo 5.14).A less common type is represented in figure 5.22. Ahydraulic driven chain system pulls some steel fingersthrough the trashrack. The fingers, at the upper travelposition dump the collected trash to a conveyor belt for124 Layman`s Guidebookautomatic removalThe figure 5.23 illustrates a very particular raker located at the entrance of asiphon intake in "Le Pouzin reservoir 12. Initially no automatic raker was foreseenbecause the screen was located very close to the spillway and the plant wasattended. The bars were placed horizontally and it was assumed that the flowwould deal with the trash easily. However it was observed that the trashrack wasclogged too often and a special horizontal raker was designed. The raker beginsits cleaning movement upstream and moves downstream so the spillway flowcontributes to cleaning it. An electrically-propelled carriage moves the raker andthe approach action is provided by an endless screw.5.2.3.2 Sediment management in intakesLocation of intakes, as detailed in 5.2.1.2 is particularly important in this respect.Open channels have a tendency to deposit sediments on the inner sides of bends,but when the intake is located at the outer side of the bend floodwaters may damageit. To overcome this problem, the best solution is to locate the intake structure in arelatively straight section of the river. Design of an intake for sediment exclusion canbe adverse for other purposes such as fish protection. For example limiting thevelocity at the screen approach to permit small fish to escape can result in depositionof sediments, up to actually blocking the entrance. Locating the intake entrance ona non-eroding bedrock streambed would prevent entrance of the sediment but thePhoto 5.14125 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresconstruction costs will be increased. Figure 5.24 shows the invert of the intake sillraised above the river bottom to reduce the inclusion of bed load and heavy suspen-ded materials near the bottom. The intake sill is kept off the river bottom to avoid thesliding of the sediment along the bed. Using the spillway to entrain the sedimentsthat otherwise would cumulate in front of the intake is a good management technique.When significant quantities of suspended sediments are expected to enter the in-take large-size particles must be removed, using a sediment-excluding structure.The sediment-trap can be located immediately downstream of the intake, where theflow velocity is reduced. Well designed it should be able to remove all particles over0.2 mm and a considerable portion of those between 0.1 and 0.2 mm. Such a struc-ture is essential for heads over 100 m. A good example of a sediment-trap with anappropriate purging system and sufficient deceleration is shown in Fig 5.25.Recently new sediment sluicing system which minimises the sluicing time andthe wasted water has appeared in the market. One of these, the SSSS (SerpentSediment Sluicing System) has been described in detail in the issue 9 spring/summer 1993- of ESHA Info.126 Layman`s Guidebook5.2.3.3 Gates and valvesIn every small hydropower scheme some components, for one reason or another maintenance or repair to avoid the runaway speed on a shutdown turbine, etc -should be temporary isolated. Some of the gates and valves suited to the intakesfor small hydro systems include the following:* Stoplogs made up of horizontally placed timbers* Sliding gates of cast iron, steel, plastic or timber* Flap gates with or without counterweights* Globe, rotary, sleeve-type, butterfly and sphere valvesAlmost without exception the power intake will incorporate some type of control gateor valve as a guard system located upstream of the turbine and which can be closedto allow the dewatering of the water conduit. This gate must be designed so it can beclosed against the maximum turbine flow in case of power failure, and it should beable to open partially, under maximum head, to allow the conduit to be filled.For low pressure the simplest type of gate is a stoplog; timbers placed horizontallyand supported at each end in grooves. Stoplogs cannot control the flow and areused only to stop it. If flow must be stopped completely, such as when a repair isneeded downstream, the use of two parallel sets of stoplogs is recommended.They should be separated by about 15 cm, so that clay can be packed in between.Gates and valves control the flow through power conduits. Gates of the sliding typeare generally used to control the flow through open canals or other low-pressureapplications. This is the type of flow control used on conveyance intake structureswhere, if necessary, the flow can be stopped completely to allow dewatering of theconduit. Cast iron sliding-type gates are those mostly used for openings of less thantwo square meters. For bigger openings fabricated steel sliding gates are cheaperand more flexible. Gates of the sliding type are seldom used in penstocks becausethey take too long to close. The stopper slides between two guides inside the gate.Photo 5.15127 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresWhen used in a high-pressure conduit the water pressurethat force the stopper against its seat makes the valvedifficult to operate. This difficulty is overcome with a wedge-shaped stopper (figure 5.26), so that the seal is brokenover the whole face as soon as it rises even a small distance.To provide a good seal around a sliding gate different kindsof rubber seals are used13. They can be made of naturalrubber, styrene-butadiene or chloroprene compounds. Theseal path is located adjacent to the roller path.Small sliding gates controlling the flow can be raised byusing either a wheel-and-axle mechanism (Photo 5.15),a hydraulic cylinder (Photo 5.16) or an electric actuatoron a screw thread.In butterfly valves a lens shaped disk mounted on a shaftturns to close the gap (figure 5.27). Under pressure eachside of the disk is submitted to the same pressure, so thevalve is easy to manoeuvre and closes rapidly. Butterflyvalves are used as the guard valves for turbines and asregulating valves. Is easy to understand that when usedfor regulation their efficiency is rather low because theshaped disk remains in the flow and causes turbulence.Butterfly valves are simple, rugged and uncomplicatedand can be operated manually or hydraulically. Photo 5.17shows a large butterfly valve being assembled in apowerhouse and photo 5.18 shows a butterfly valve,hydraulically operated, with an ancillary opening systemand a counterweight, at the entrance to a small Francisturbine.Photo 5.16128 Layman`s GuidebookGlobe and rotary valves (figure 5.28) have lower head losses than the slide andbutterfly gate valves and are also commonly used in spite of their higher price.The radial gates (figure 5.29), conceptually different, are a method of forming amoveable overflow crest and allow a close control of headwater and tailwater. Inphoto 5.19 it can be seen the housing of the sector on a concrete pier. The radialgate is operated by raising or lowering to allow water to pass beneath the gateplate. The curved plate that forms the upstream face is concentric with the trunnionsof the gate. The trunnions are anchored in the piers and carry the full hydrostaticPhoto 5.17Photo 5.18129 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresload. Because the hydrostatic load passes through the trunnions, the lifting forcerequired by the hoisting mechanism is minimised. The head losses in gates andvalves are relatively high, especially when are operated as regulating devices.For further details refer to Chapter 2, Section 2.2.4 and the enclosed bibliography.5.2.4 Open channels5.2.4.1 Design and dimensioningThe flow conveyed by a canal is a function of its cross-sectional profile, its slope,and its roughness. Natural channels are normally very irregular in shape, andtheir surface roughness changes with distance and time. The application ofhydraulic theory to natural channels is more complex than for artificial channelswhere the cross-section is regular in shape and the surface roughness of theconstruction materials - earth, concrete, steel or wood - is well documented, sothat the application of hydraulic theories yields reasonably accurate results.Table 2.4, Chapter 2, illustrates the fundamental geometric properties of differentchannel sections.In small hydropower schemes the flow in the channels is in general in the roughturbulent zone and the Manning equation can be appliedQ AR Sn A SnP= =2 3 1 2 5 3 1 22 3/ / / // (5.6)where n is Manning's coefficient, which in the case of artificial lined channels maybe estimated with reasonable accuracy, and S is the hydraulic gradient, whichnormally is the bed slope. AlternativelyPhoto 5.19130 Layman`s Guidebook131 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresS QnPAQnAR= FHG IKJ = FHG IKJ2 35 322 32// / (5.7)Equation 5.7 applies when metric or S.I. units are used. To use Imperial or Englishunits the equation must be modified toQ A SnP= 149 5 3 1 22 3. / //where Q is in ft3/s; A in ft2 and P in ft. n has the same value as beforeTabIe 5.1 TypicaI vaIues of Manning's n.Type of ChanneI Manning's nExcavated earth channeIsClean 0.022Gravelly 0.025Weedy 0.030Stony, cobbles (or natural streams) 0.035ArtificiaIIy Iined channeIsBrass 0.011Steel, smooth 0.012Steel, painted 0.014Cast iron 0.013Concrete, well finished 0.012Concrete, unfinished 0.014Planed wood 0.012Clay tile 0.014Brickwork 0.015Asphalt 0.016Corrugated metal 0.022Rubble masonry 0.025Equation 5.7 shows that for the same cross-sectional area A, and channel slopeS, the channel with a larger hydraulic radius R, delivers a larger discharge. Thatmeans that for a given cross-sectional area, the section with the least wettedperimeter is the most efficient hydraulically. Semicircular sections are consequentlythe most efficient. A semicircular section however, unless built with prefabricatedmaterials, is expensive to build and difficult to maintain. The most efficienttrapezoidal section is the half hexagon, whose side slope is 1 v. 0.577 h. Strictlythis is only true if the water level reaches the level of the top of the bank. Actualdimensions have to include a certain freeboard (vertical distance between thedesigned water surface and the top of the channel bank) to prevent water levelfluctuations overspilling the banks. Minimum freeboard for lined canals is about10 cm, and for unlined canals this should be about one third of the designedwater depth with a minimum of fifteen centimetres. One way to prevent overflowof the canal is to provide spillways at appropriate intervals; any excess water isconveyed, via the spillway, to an existing streambed or to a gully.132 Layman`s GuidebookIt should be noted that the best hydraulic section does not necessarily have thelowest excavation cost. If the canal is unlined, the maximum side slope is set bythe slope at which the material will permanently stand under water. Clay slopesmay stand at 1 vertical,3/4 horizontal, whereas sandy soils must have flatterslopes (1 vert., 2 hoz.)Table 5.2 defines for the most common canal sections the optimum profile as afunction of the water depth y, together with the parameters identifying the profile.TabIe 5.2ChanneI Area Wetter HydrauIic Top Watersection perimeter radius width depthA P R T dTrapezoid:half hexagon 1.73 y2 3.46 y 0.500 y 2.31 y 0.750 yRectangle :half square 2 y2 4 y 0.500 y 2 y yTriangle:half square y2 2.83 y 0.354 y 2 y 0.500 ySemicircle 0.5 py2 p y 0.500 y 2 y 0.250 pyIn conventional hydropower schemes and in some of the small ones, especiallythose located in wide valleys, when the channels must transport large discharges,these are built according to figure 5.30. According to this profile, the excavatedground is used to build the embankments, not only up to the designed height butto provide the freeboard, the extra height necessary to foresee the height increaseproduced by a sudden gate closing, waves or the excess arising in the canal itselfunder heavy storms.These embankment channels although easy to construct are difficult to maintain,due to wall erosion and aquatic plant growth. The velocity of water in these unlinedcanals should be kept above a minimum value to prevent sedimentation and aquaticplant growth, but below a maximum value to prevent erosion. In earth canals, if thewater temperature approaches 20C, a minimum speed of 0.7 m/s is necessary toprevent plant growth. If the canal is unlined and built in sandy soil, the velocity shouldbe limited to 0.4-0.6 m/s. Concrete-lined canals may have clear water velocities upto 10 m/s without danger. Even if the water contains sand, gravel or stones, velocitiesup to 4 m/s are acceptable. To keep silt in suspension after the intake, the flowvelocity should be at least 0.3-0.5 m/s.The wall-side slope in rock can be practically vertical, in hardened clay :1 whereasif it has been build in sandy ground should not exceed 2:1.In high mountain schemes the canal is usually built in reinforced concrete, somuch so that environmental legislation may require it to be covered and133 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresrevegetated. Figure 5.31 shows the schematic section of a rectangular reinforcedconcrete canal in the Cordianes scheme, referred to in chapter 4 and photo 5.20shows the same canal not yet covered with the concrete slab that would serve asa basis for new ground and new vegetation. . Sometimes to ensure that no seepagewill occur, the canal is lined with geotextile sheets, to prevent landslides consequenton the wetting of clayey material.As is shown in the following examples, once the canal profile has been selectedit is easy to compute its maximum discharge,Photo 5.20134 Layman`s GuidebookExampIe 5.1Assuming a fIow depth of 1 m, a channeI base width of 1.5 m. and sidesIopes of 2 vert: 1 hoz, a bed sIope of 0.001 and a Manning's coefficient of0.015, determine the discharge (Q), the mean veIocity (V).According to Table 2.4 for b=1.5 x=1/2 and y=1A 1.5 0.5 1 1 2m ; P 1.5 2 1 0.5 3.736m2 2= + = = + + = b gApplying 5.6 for A=2 and P=3.736Q 10.01525/ 33.7362/3 0.001 2.78m3/s; V 2.782 1.39m/s = = = =ExampIe 5.2Determine the sIope knowing the discharge and the canaI's dimensions.Assuming a canaI paved with smooth cement surface (n=0.011), a channeIbase of 2 m, side sIopes with incIination 1v:2h and a uniform water depthof 1.2 m, determine the bed sIope for a discharge of 17.5 m3/s.Applying the formulae of table 2.4 and equation 5.6S =

FHG IKJ =17 5 0 011528 0 717 0 0022 32. .. . ./When the canal section, the slope and discharge are known and the depth "d isrequired, equation 5.6 nor any other - does not provide a direct answer soiterative calculations must be used.ExampIe 5.3A trapezoidaI open channeI has a bottom width of 3 m and side sIopeswith incIination 1.5:1. The channeI is Iined with unfinished concrete. ThechanneI is Iaid on a sIope of 0.0016 and the discharge is 21 m3/s. CaIcuIatethe depthAccording to 5.6 the section factorA=(b+zy)y = (3 + 1.5y)y P=b+2y(1+z2)0.5= 3+3.6yCompute the factor section for different values of y, up to find one approachingclosely 6.825:For y = 1.5 m A=7.875, R=0.937, AR2/3=7.539For y = 1.4 m A=7.140, R=0.887. AR2/3=6.593For y = 1.43 m A=7.357, R=0.902, AR2/3=6.869According to the above results the normal depth is slightly under 1.43. Usingthe software program FlowPro 2.0, mentioned in chapter 2 it would beinstantaneously calculated, as shown in the enclosed captured screen: a depthof 1.425, with A=2.868, P=8.139, R=0.900 and a section factor 6.826Summarising, the design of fabricated channels is a simple process requiring thefollowing steps:135 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structures Estimate the coefficient n from table 5.1 Compute the form factor AR2/3=nQ/S1/2 with the known parameters in secondterm If optimum section is required apply values in table 5.2. Otherwise use valuesin table 2.4 Check if the velocity is high enough to form deposit or aquatic flora Check the Froude number NF to determine if it is a subcritical or a supercriticalflow Define the required freeboardExampIe 5.4Design a trapezoidaI channeI for an 11 m3/s discharge. The channeI wiIIbe Iined with weII-finished concrete and the sIope 0.001Step 1. Manning n = 0.012Step 2. Compute form factorAR nQS2 3 0 012 110 001 4 174/ .. . = =

=Step 3. Not intended to find the optimum section.Step 4.Assuming a bottom width of 6 m and side slopes with inclination 2:1compute the depth d by iteration as in example 5.3d = 0.87 m A = 6.734 m2Step 5. Compute the velocityV = 11/6.734 = 1.63 m/s OKStep 6. Total channel height. The tables of the US Bureau of Reclamation (USA)recommend a freeboard of 0.37 m.Needles to say that the FlowPro software would provide all this in one shot.136 Layman`s GuidebookTo ensure that the channel never overflows endangering the slope stability, andin addition to provide a generous freeboard, a lateral spillway (as in Photo 5.21)should be provided.Before definitely deciding the channel route, a geologist should carefully studythe geomorphology of the terrain. Take into consideration the accidents detailedin Chapter 4, section 4.4. The photo 5.22 shows clearly how uplift can easily ruina power channel, 6 m wide and 500 m long, in a 2 MW scheme. On one particularday, a flood occurred which was later calculated to be a 100 year event. At thetime the flood occurred, the head race channel had been empty, and upliftpressures became a reality, so the channel was destroyed.Photo 5.21Photo 5.22137 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structures5.2.4.2 Circumventing obstaclesAlong the alignment of a canal obstacles may be encountered, and to bypassthem it will be necessary to go over, around or under them.The crossing of a stream or a ravine requires the provision of a flume, a kind ofprolongation of the canal, with the same slope, supported on concrete or steelpiles or spanning as a bridge. Steel pipes are often the best solution, because apipe may be used as the chord of a truss, fabricated in the field. The only potentialproblem is the difficulty of removing sediment deposited when the canal is full ofstill water. Photo 5.23 shows a flume of this type in China.Inverted siphons can also solve the problem. An inverted siphon consists of aninlet and an outlet structure connected by a pipe. The diameter calculation followsthe same rules as for penstocks, which are analysed later.5.2.5 Penstocks5.2.5.1 Arrangement and material selection for penstocks.Conveying water from the intake to the powerhouse -the purpose of a penstock-may not appear a difficult task, considering the familiarity of water pipes. Howeverdeciding the most economical arrangement for a penstock is not so simple.Penstocks can be installed over or under the ground, depending on factors suchas the nature of the ground itself, the penstock material, the ambient temperaturesand the environmental requirements.A flexible and small diameter PVC penstock for instance, can be laid on the ground,following its outline with a minimum of grade preparation. Otherwise larger penstocksPhoto 5.23138 Layman`s Guidebookmust be buried, provided there is a minimum of rock excavation. The sand and gravelsurrounding the pipe provides good insulation, and eliminates anchor blocks andexpansion joints. Buried penstocks must be carefully painted and wrapped to protectthe exterior from corrosion, but provided the protective coating is not damaged wheninstalled, further maintenance should be minimal. From the environmental point ofview the solution is optimal because the ground can be returned to its original condition,and the penstock does not constitute a barrier to the movement of wildlife.A penstock installed above ground can be designed with or without expansion joints.Variations in temperature are especially important if the turbine does not functioncontinuously, or when the penstock is dewatered for repair, resulting in thermalexpansion or contraction. Usually the penstock is built in straight or nearly straightlines, with concrete anchor blocks at each bend and with an expansion joint betweeneach set of anchors (Fig 5.32). The anchor blocks must resist the thrust of the penstockplus the frictional forces caused by its expansion and contraction, so when possiblethey should be founded on rock. If, due to the nature of the ground, the anchor blocksrequire large volumes of concrete, thus becoming rather expensive, an alternativesolution is to eliminate every second anchor block and all the expansion joints, leavingthe alternate bends free to move slightly. In this case it is desirable to lay the straightsections of the penstock in steel saddles, made to fit the contour of the pipe andgenerally covering 120 degrees of the invert (Fig 5.33). The saddles can be madefrom steel plates and shapes, with graphite asbestos sheet packing placed betweensaddle and pipe to reduce friction forces. The movement can be accommodated withexpansion joints, or by designing the pipe layout with bends free to move.If a pipeline system using spigot and socket joints with O-ring gaskets is chosen,then expansion and contraction is accommodated in the joints.Today there is a wide choice of materials for penstocks. For the larger heads anddiameters, fabricated welded steel is probably the best option. Nevertheless spiralmachine-welded steel pipes should be considered, due to their lower price, if theyare available in the required sizes. For high heads, steel or ductile iron pipes arepreferred, but at medium and low heads steel becomes less competitive, becausethe internal and external corrosion protection layers do not decrease with the wallthickness and because there is a minimum wall thickness for the pipe to be handled.For smaller diameters, there is a choice between manufactured steel pipe, suppliedwith spigot and socket joints and rubber "O gaskets, which eliminates field welding,139 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresor with welded-on flanges, bolted on site (Fig 5.34); plain spun or pre-stressedconcrete; ductile iron spigot and socket pipes with gaskets; cement-asbestos;glass-reinforced plastic (GRP); PVC or polyethylene (PE) plastic pipes. Plasticpipe14 is a very attractive solution for medium heads - a PVC pipe of 0.4 m diametercan be used up to a maximum head of 200 meters - because it is often cheaper,lighter and more easily handled than steel and does not need protection againstcorrosion. PVC15 pipes are easy to install because of the spigot and socket jointsprovided with "O ring gaskets. PVC pipes are usually installed underground witha minimum cover of one meter. Due to their low resistance to UV radiation theycannot be used on the surface unless painted coated or wrapped. The minimumradius of curvature of a PVC pipe is relatively large - 100 times the pipe diameter- andits coefficient of thermal expansion is five times higher that for steel. Theyare also rather brittle and unsuited to rocky ground.Pipes of PE16 - high molecular weight polyethylene - can be laid on top of the groundand can accommodate bends of 20-40 times the pipe diameter -for sharper bends,special factory fittings are required -. PE pipe floats on water and can be dragged bycable in long sections but must be joined in the field by fusion welding, requiring aspecial machine. PE pipes can withstand pipeline freeze-up without damage, butfor the time being, may be not available in sizes over 300 mm diameter.Concrete penstocks, both pre-stressed with high tensile wires or steel reinforced,featuring an interior steel jacket to prevent leaks, and furnished with rubber gasketspigot and socket joints constitute another solution. Unfortunately their heavy140 Layman`s Guidebookweight makes transportation and handling costly, but they are not affected bycorrosion.In less developed countries, pressure creosoted wood-stave, steel-banded pipe isan alternative that can be used in diameters up to 5.5 meters and heads of up to 50meters - which may be increased up to 120 meters for a diameter of 1.5 meters. Theadvantages include flexibility to conform to ground settlement, ease of laying on theground with almost no grade preparation, no requirement of expansion joints and nonecessity for concrete supports or corrosion protection. Wood stave pipe is assembledfrom individual staves and steel bands or hoops that allow it to be easily transportedeven over difficult terrain. Disadvantages include leakage, particularly in the fillingoperations, the need to keep the pipe full of water when repairing the turbine, andconsiderable maintenance such as spray coating with tar every five years.TabIe 5.4 MateriaIs used in pressure pipesMateriaI Young's moduIus Coefficient of UItimate nof eIasticity Iinear expansion tensiIe strengthE (N/m2)E9 a (m/m C)E6 (N/m2)E6Welded steel 206 12 400 0.012Polyethylene 0.55 140 5 0.009Polyvinyl chloride (PVC) 2.75 54 13 0.009Asbestos cement n.a 8.1 n.a 0.011Cast iron 78.5 10 140 0.014Ductile iron 16.7 11 340 0.015141 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresTable 5.4 shows the main properties of the above materials17,18. Some of theseproperties are typical only; particularly the values of the Hazen Williams coefficientwhich depends on the surface condition of the pipe.5.2.5.2 Hydraulic design and structural requirementsA penstock is characterised by materials, diameter, wall thickness and type of joint. the material is selected according to the ground conditions, accessibility, weight,jointing system and cost. the diameter is selected to reduce frictional losses within the penstock to anacceptable level the wall thickness is selected to resist the maximum internal hydraulic pressure,including transient surge pressure that will occur.Penstock diameter.The diameter is selected as the result of a trade-off between penstock cost andpower losses. The power available from the flow Q and head H is given by theequation:P = QHghwhere Q is the discharge in m3/s, H the net head in m, g the specific weight ofwater in kN/m3 and h the overall efficiency.The net head equals the gross head minus the sum of all losses, including thefriction and turbulence losses in the penstock, that are approximately proportionalto the square of the velocity of the water in the pipe. To convey a certain flow, asmall diameter penstock will need a higher water velocity than a larger-diameterone, and therefore the losses will be greater. Selecting a diameter as small aspossible will minimise the penstock cost but the energy losses will be larger andvice versa. Chapter 2 details the friction loss calculations, putting special emphasison the graphic representation of the Colebrook equations the Moody diagramand the Wallingford charts- and on the Manning's formula. In this chapter theabove principles are used and some examples will facilitate their application inreal cases.A simple criterion for diameter selection is to limit the head loss to a certainpercentage. Loss in power of 4% is usually acceptable. A more rigorous approachis to select several possible diameters, computing power and annual energy. Thepresent value of this energy loss over the life of the plant is calculated and plottedfor each diameter (Figure 5.35). In the other side the cost of the pipe for eachdiameter is also calculated and plotted. Both curves are added graphically andthe optimum diameter would be that closest to the theoretical optimum.Actually the main head loss in a pressure pipe are friction losses; the head lossesdue to turbulence passing through the trashrack, in the entrance to the pipe, in bends,expansions, contractions and valves are minor losses. Consequently a first approachwill suffice to compute the friction losses, using for example the Manning equationhL n QDf= 10 3 2 25 333. . (5.8)142 Layman`s GuidebookExamining equation (5.8) it can be seen that dividing the diameter by two thelosses are multiplied by 40. From equation (5.8)D n Q Lhf= FHG IKJ10 3 2 2 0 1875. .(5.9)If we limit hf at 4H/100, D can be computed knowing Q, n and L, by the equationD n Q LH= FHG IKJ2 69 2 2 0 1875. .(5.10)ExampIe 5.5A scheme has a gross head of 85 m, a discharge of 3 m3/s, and a 173-mIong penstock in weIded steeI. CaIcuIate the diameter so the power Iossesdue to friction do not surpass 4%.According to (5.10) m 88 . 085 173 012 . 0 369 . 2 1875 . 02 2=||.|

\| = DWe select a 1-m steel welded pipe and compute all the losses in the next example143 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresExampIe 5.6Compute the friction and turbuIence head Iosses in a scheme as theiIIustrated in figure 5.36. The rated discharge is 3 m3/s and the gross head85 m. The steeI weIded penstock diameter 1.0 m. The radius of curvatureof the bends are four times the diameter. At the entrance of the powerintake there is a trashrack with a totaI surface of 6 m2, incIined 60 regardingthe horizontaI. The bars are 12-mm thick stainIess steeI bars, and thedistance between bars 70-mm.The flow velocity approaching the screen is according to (5.4) with K1=1J0 3 70 1270 16 10866 0 7 = + =. . m/ sThe head loss through the trashrack is given by the Kilchner formulahf = FHG IKJ

= 2 4 1270 0 72 9 81 0866 0 00494 3 2. .. . ./mThe head loss at the inlet of the penstock (a bad design) is given in figure 2.11,Chapter 2: K=0.08. The velocity in the penstock is 3.82 m/s, so the head lossat the inlet:he= 0.08 x 3.822/(2 x 9.81) = 0.06 m144 Layman`s GuidebookThe gross head at the beginning of the penstock is therefore85-0.005-0.06=84.935 mThe friction loss in the penstock, according Manning equation (2.15)hf =

=10 3 0 012 310 173 2 302 25 333. .. .. mThe Kb coefficient for the first bend is 0.05 (28% of the corresponding to a 90bend as in 2.2.23). The coefficient for the second bend Kb=0.085 and for thethird bend Kb=0.12. The head losses in the three bends amount to(0.05 + 0.085 + 0.12) x 3.822/(2 x 9.81) = 0.19 m.The head loss in the gate valve 0.15 x 3.822/(2 x 9.81) = 0.11 mSummarising: head loss in trashrack plus pipe inlet: 0.065 mhead loss in three bends and valve : 0.30 mhead loss by friction in the penstock: 2.30 mTotaI head Ioss: 2.665 m equivaIent to 3.14% of the gross power.WaII thicknessThe wall thickness required depends on the pipe material, its ultimate tensilestrength (and yield), the pipe diameter and the operating pressure. In steadyflows - discharge is assumed to remain constant with time - the operating pressureat any point along a penstock is equivalent to the head of water above that point.The wall thickness in this case is computed by the equation:e P Df= 12 (5.11)where e = Wall thickness in mmP1= Hydrostatic pressure in kN/mm2D = Internal pipe diameter in mmsf = Allowable tensile strength in kN/mm2In steel pipes the above equation is modified bye PDk ef f s= +12 (5.12)where es= extra thickness to allow for corrosionkf= weld efficiencykf= 1 for seamless pipeskf= 0.9 for xray inspected weldskf= 1.0 for xray inspected welds and stress relievedsf = allowable tensile stress (1400 kN/mm2)The pipe should be rigid enough to be handled without danger of deformation in thefield. ASME recommends a minimum thickness in mm equivalent to 2.5 times thediameter in metres plus 1.2 mm. Other organisations recommend as minimumthickness tmin=(D+508)/400, where all dimensions are in mm.In high head schemes it can be convenient to use penstock of uniform diameterbut with different thicknesses as a function of the hydrostatic pressures.145 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuresA certain area of the penstock can remain under the Energy Gradient Line (page 13)and collapse by sub-atmospheric pressure. The collapsing depression will be given byP eDc = FHG IKJ882500 3(5.13)where e and D are respectively the wall thickness and diameter of the pipe inmm.This negative pressure can be avoided by installing an aeration pipe with adiameter in cm given byd QPc= 7 47 . (5.14)provided Pc 0 49 . kgN/ mm2; otherwise d Q = 894 .Sudden changes of flow can occur when the plant operator or the governingsystem opens or closes the gates rapidly. Occasionally the flow may even bestopped suddenly due to full load rejection, or simply because an obstructionbecome lodged in the nozzle of a Pelton turbine jet. A sudden change of flow ratein a penstock may involve a great mass of water moving inside the penstock. Thepressure wave which occurs with a sudden change in the water's velocity is knownas waterhammer; and although transitory, can cause dangerously high and lowpressures whose effects can be dramatic: the penstock can burst fromoverpressure or collapse if the pressures are reduced below ambient. The surgepressures induced by the waterhammer phenomenon can be of a magnitudeseveral times greater than the static pressure due to the head, and must beconsidered in calculating the wall thickness of the penstock.Detailed information on the waterhammer phenomenon can be found in texts onhydraulics19,20, but sufficient information has been given in Chapter 2, section2.2.3. Some examples will show the application of the recommended formulae.As explained in chapter 2, the pressure wave speed c (m/s) depends on theelasticity of the water and pipe material according to the formulaEtKDKc+=

110 3(5.15)where K = bulk modulus of water 2.1x109 N/m2E = modulus of elasticity of pipe material (N/m2)D = pipe diameter (mm)t = wall thickness (mm)The time taken for the pressure wave to reach the valve on its return, after suddenclosure is known as the critical timeT= 2L/c (5.16)146 Layman`s GuidebookFor instantaneous closure the pressure wave reaches the valve after its closure-the increase in pressure, in metres of water column, due to the pressure wave isP cgv=

(5.17)where Dv is the velocity changeExamples 6.4 and 6.5 show that surge pressures in steel pipes are more thanthree times greater than in PVC, due to the greater stiffness of the steel.ExampIe 5.7CaIcuIate the pressure wave veIocity, for instant cIosure, in a steeIpenstock 400mm-dia and 4mm-waII thickness Applying 5.15c =

=305 49 8 123. mAs the example 5.8 shows, the surge pressure in the steel pipe is three timeshigher than in the PVC pipe, due to the greater rigidity of the steelIf the change in velocity occurs in more than ten times the critical time T, little orno overpressure will be generated and the phenomenon may be ignored. Inbetween, if T>2L/c, Ps will not develop fully, because the reflected negative wavearriving at the valve will compensate for the pressure rise. In these cases theAllievi formula may compute the maximum overpressure:147 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structures||.|

\|+ = A NN NPP4 220 (5.18)where P0 is the hydrostatic pressure due to the head andN LJgPt= FHG IKJ002(5.19)where: V0 = water velocity in m/sL = total penstock length (m)P0 = gross hydrostatic pressure (m)t = closing time (s)The total pressure experienced by the penstock is P = P0 +DPThe next example illustrates the application of the Allievi formula, when the closuretime is at least twice but less than 10 times the critical time.ExampIe 5.9CaIcuIate the waII thickness in the penstock anaIysed in exampIe 5.6 ifthe vaIve cIosure time is 3 seconds.Summarising the data, Gross head : 84.935 mRated discharge: 3 m3/sInternal pipe diameter 1.0 mTotal pipe length: 173 mEstimating in a first approach at 5 mm the wall thickness to compute the wavespeed cc =

+

=21 101 21 10 100021 10 5836 76911.... m/ sThe closure time is bigger than the critical one (0.41 s) but smaller than 10times its value, so the Allievi formula can be applied.The water velocity in the pipe is 3.82 m/sJ =

=4 310 3822 . . m/ sN would be computed for a gross head in the pipe of 84.935 mN =

+ =1106 10002 1400 1 4 95.. mmThat agrees with the initial estimation and covers the specs for handling thepipes in the field (tmin=2.5x1+1.2=3.7 mm)To compute the air vent pipe diameter:Pc = FHG IKJ = 882500 51000 0113. kN / mm2And the diameter d = = 7 47 3011 22 46 .. . cmThe waterhammer problem becomes acute in long pipes, when the open channelis substituted by a pressure pipe all along the trace. For a rigorous approach it isnecessary to take into consideration not only the elasticity of fluid and pipe mate-rial, as above, but also the hydraulic losses and the closure time of the valve. Themathematical approach is cumbersome and requires the use of a computerprogram. For interested readers, Chaudry 19, Rich 20, and Streeter and Wylie 21give some calculation methods together with a certain number of worked examples.To determine the minimum pipe thickness required at any point along the penstocktwo waterhammer hypotheses should be taken into consideration: normalwaterhammer and emergency waterhammer. Normal waterhammer occurs whenthe turbine shuts down under governor control. Under these conditions, theoverpressure in the penstock can reach 25% of the gross head, in the case ofPelton turbines, and from 25% to 50% in the case of reaction turbines -dependingon the governor time constants- The turbine manufacturer's advice should betaken into consideration. Emergency waterhammer, caused for example by anobstruction in the needle valve of a Pelton turbine, or a malfunction of the turbinecontrol system, must be calculated according to equation (5.17).In steel penstocks, the compounded stresses -static plus transitory- are a function bothof the ultimate tensile and yield strength. In the case of normal waterhammer, thecombined stress should be under 60% of the yield strength and 38% of the ultimatetensile strength. In the case of emergency waterhammer, the combined stress shouldbe under 96% of the yield strength and 61% of the ultimate tensile strength.Commercial pipes are often rated according to the maximum working pressure underwhich they are designed to operate. The pressure rating of a pipe already includesa safety factor, and sometimes may include an allowance for surge pressures. Safetyfactors and surge pressure allowances depends on the standard being used.If the scheme is liable to surge pressure waves a device to reduce its effects mustbe considered. The simplest one is the surge tower, a sort of large tube, connectedat its base to the penstock and open to the atmosphere. The fundamental action ofa surge tower is to reduce the length of the column of water by placing a free water149 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structuressurface closer to the turbine (figure 5.37). Some authors21 consider that the surgetower is unnecessary if the pipe length is inferior to 5 times the gross head. It is alsoconvenient to take into account the water acceleration constant th in the pipet VLgHh =where L = length of penstock (m),V = flow velocity (m/s) andH = net head (m).150 Layman`s GuidebookPhoto 5.24If th is inferior to 3 seconds the surge tower is unnecessary but if surpass 6 seconds,either a surge tower or another correcting device must be installed to avoid strongoscillations in the turbine controller.With the valve open and a steady flow in the penstock, the level of the water inthe tower will correspond to the pressure in the penstock - equivalent to the nethead. When by a sudden closure of the valve the pressure in the penstock risesabruptly, the water in the penstock tends to flow into the tower, raising the level ofthe water above the level in the intake. The level in the tower then begins to fall asthe water flows from the tower into the penstock, until a minimum level is reached.The flow then reverses and the level in the tower rise again and so on. Fig 5.38shows a graph plotting the surge height versus time. The maximum heightcorresponds to the overpressure in the penstock due to the waterhammer. Thethrottling introduced by a restricted orifice will reduce the surge amplitude by 20to 30 per cent. The time th plays an important role in the design of the turbineregulation system. In a badly designed system, the governor and the tower surgecan interact, generating speed regulation problems too severe for the governor tocope with.In instances, when the closure time of the turbine valves must be rapid, a reliefvalve placed in parallel with the turbine, such that it opens as the turbine wicketgates close, can be convenient. This has the effect of slowing down the flow changesin the penstock. In the ESHA NEWS issue of spring 1991 there is a description ofsuch a valve. Photo 5.24 shows the water jet getting out of the open valve.151 Chapter 5. Hydraulic structures5.2.5.3 Saddles, supporting blocks and expansion jointsThe saddles are designed to support the weight of the penstock full of water, butnot to resist significant longitudinal forces. The vertical component of the weightto be supported, in kN, has a value ofF W W LcosF1 p w= +c hwhere Wp = weight of pipe per meter (kN/m)Ww = weight of water per meter of pipe (kN/m)L = length of pipe between mid points of each span (m)F = angle of pipe with horizontalThe design of support rings is based on the elastic theory of thin cylindrical shells.The pipe shell is subject to beam and hoop stresses, and the loads are transmittedto the support ring by shear. If penstocks are continuously supported at a numberof points, the bending moment at any point of penstock may be calculated assumingthat it is a continuous beam, and using the corresponding equation. The rings arewelded to the pipe shell with two full length fillet welds and are tied together withdiaphragm platesThe span between supports L is determined by the value of the maximumpermissible deflection L/65 000. Therefore the maximum length between supportsis given by the equationL 182.61 D 0.0147 4D4 3P= + b gwhere D = internal diameter (m) and P = unit weight of the pipe full of water (kg/m)5.2.6TailracesAfter passing through the turbine the water returns to the river trough a shortcanal called a tailrace. Impulse turbines can have relatively high exit velocities,so the tailrace should be designed to ensure that the powerhouse would not beundermined. Protection with rock riprap or concrete aprons should be providedbetween the powerhouse and the stream. The design should also ensure thatduring relatively high flows the water in the tailrace does not rise so far that itinterferes with the turbine runner.With a reaction turbine the level of the water inthe tailrace influences the operation of the turbine and more specifically the onsetof cavitation. This level also determines the available net head and in low headsystems may have a decisive influence on the economic results.152 Layman`s GuidebookBibliography1. J.L. Brennac. "Les Hauses Hydroplus, ESHA Info n 9 verano 19932. Para ms informacin acudir a la pgina de 1NTERNEThttp://www.obermeyerhydro.com3. H.C. Huang and C.E. Hita, Hydraulic Engineering Systems Prentice HallInc., Englewood Cliffs, New Jersey 19874. British Hydrodynamic Research Association Proceedings of theSymposium on the Design and Operation of Siphon Spillways, London19755. Allen R.Inversin, Micro-Hydopower Sourcebook, NRECA InternationalFoundation, Washington, D.C.6. USBR Design of Small Dams 3rd ed, Denver, Colorado,19877. USBR, Design of Small Canal Structures, Denver, Colorado, 1978a.8. USBR, Hydraulic Design of Spillways and Energy Dissipators. WashingtonDC, 19649.T. Moore, TLC for small hydro: good design means fewer headaches,HydroReview/April 1988.10. T.P. Tung y otros, Evaluation of Alternative Intake Configuration forSmall Hydro. Actas de HIDROENERGIA 93. Munich.11 ASCE, Committee on Intakes, Guidelines for the Design of Intakes forHydroelectric Plants, 199512. G. Munet y J.M. Compas PCH de recuperation d'energie au barrage deLe Pouzin.Actas de HIDROENERGIA 93, Munich13. Rubber seals for steel hydraulic gates, G.Schmausser & G.Hartl, WaterPower & Dam Construction September 198814 ISO 161-1-1996 Thermoplastic pipes for conveyance of fluids - Nominaloutside diameters and nominal pressures -- Part 1:Metric series15 ISO 3606-1976 Unplasticized polyvinyl chloride (PVC) pipes. Toleranceson outside diameters and wall thickness16 ISO 3607-1977 Polyethylene (PE) pipes. Tolerances on outside diametersand wall thickness17 ISO 3609-1977 Polypropylene (PP) pipes. Tolerances on outsidediameters and wall thickness18 ISO 4065-1996 Thermoplastic pipes -- Universal wall thickness table19 H.Chaudry Applied Hydraulic Transients Van Nostrand ReinholdCompany, 1979.20 J.Parmakian, Waterhammer Analyses, Dover Publications, Inc, NewYork, 196321 Electrobras (Centrais Elctricas Brasileiras S.A.) Manual de MinicentraisHidreltricas6.0 PowerhouseIn a small hydropower scheme the role of the powerhouse is to protect from theweather hardships the electromechanical equipment that convert the potentialenergy of water into electricity. The number, type and power of the turbo-generators,their configuration, the scheme head and the geomorphology of the site controlsthe shape and size of the building.Fig. 6.1 is a schematic view of an integral intake indoor powerhouse suitable forlow head schemes. The substructure is part of the weir and embodies the powerintake with its trashrack, the vertical axis open flume Francis turbine coupled tothe generator, the draught tube and the tailrace. The control equipment and theoutlet transformers are located in the generator forebay.In some cases the whole superstructure is dispensed with, or reduced to encloseonly the switchgear and control equipment. Integrating turbine and generator in asingle waterproofed unit that can be installed directly in the waterway means thata conventional powerhouse is not required. Figure 6.2 and Photo 6.1 shows asubmerged Flygt turbine with a sliding cylinder as control gate and with noprotection for the equipment. Siphon units provide an elegant solution in schemeswith heads under 10 meters and for units of less than 1000 kW installed. Photo6.2 shows a recent installation in France with the electromechanical equipmentsimply protected by a steel plate.Otherwise to mitigate the environmental impact the powerhouse can be entirelysubmerged (see chapter 1, figure 1.6). In that way the level of sound is sensiblyreduced and the visual impact is nil.6 Electromechanical equipment154 Layman`s GuidebookIn low-head schemes the number of Kaplan turbine configurations is very large(pit, in S, right angle, etc.) as shown in figures 6.18 to 6.25. In medium and highhead schemes powerhouses are more conventional (figure 6.3) with an entrancefor the penstock and a tailrace. This kind of powerhouse is sometimes located ina cave, either natural or excavated for the purpose.The powerhouse can also be at the base of an existing dam, where the waterarrives via an existing bottom outlet or an intake tower. Figure 1.4 in chapter 1illustrates such a configuration.Photo 6.1155 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipment6.1 Hydraulic turbinesThe purpose of a hydraulic turbine is to transform the water potential energy tomechanical rotational energy. Although this handbook does not define guidelinesfor the design of turbines (a role reserved for the turbine manufacturers) it isappropriate to provide a few criteria to guide the choice of the right turbine for aparticular application and even to provide appropriate formulae to determine itsmain dimensions. These criteria and formulae are based on the work undertakenPhoto 6.2Photo 6.3156 Layman`s Guidebookby Siervo and Lugaresi, Austerre and Verdehan1, Giraud and Beslin2, Belhaj3,Gordon and others, which provide a series of formulae by analysing thecharacteristics of installed turbines. It is necessary to emphasize however that noadvice is comparable to that provided by the manufacturer, and every developershould refer to him from the beginning of the development project.Photo 6.4157 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipment6.1.1 Classification criteria6.1.1.1 On the basis of the flow regime in the turbineThe potential energy in the water is converted into mechanical energy in theturbine, by one of two fundamental and basically different mechanisms: The water pressure can apply a force on the face of the runner blades, whichdecreases as it proceeds through the turbine. Turbines that operate in this wayare called reaction turbines. The turbine casing, with the runner fully immersedin water, must be strong enough to withstand the operating pressure. The water pressure is converted into kinetic energy before entering the runner.The kinetic energy is in the form of a high-speed jet that strikes the buckets,mounted on the periphery of the runner. Turbines that operate in this way arecalled impulse turbines. As the water after striking the buckets falls into the tailwater with little remaining energy, the casing can be light and serves the purposeof preventing splashing.6.1.1.1.1 Impulse turbinesPeIton turbinesPelton turbines are impulse turbines where one or more jets impinge on a wheelcarrying on its periphery a large number of buckets. Each jet issues through anozzle with a needle (or spear) valve to control the flow (figure 6.4). They are onlyused for relatively high heads. The axes of the nozzles are in the plane of therunner (figure 6.5). To stop the turbine e.g. when the turbineapproaches the runaway speed due to load rejection- the jet(see figure 6.4) may be deflected by a plate so that it doesnot impinge on the buckets. In this way the needle valve canbe closed very slowly, so that overpressure surge in thepipeline is kept to an acceptable minimum.Any kinetic energy leaving the runner is lost and so the bucketsare designed to keep exit velocities to a minimum. The turbinecasing only needs to protect the surroundings against watersplashing and therefore can be very light.158 Layman`s GuidebookTurgo turbinesThe Turgo turbine can operate under a head in therange of 30-300 m. Like the Pelton it is an impulseturbine, but its buckets are shaped differently and thejet of water strikes the plane of its runner at an angleof 20. Water enters the runner through one side ofthe runner disk and emerges from the other (Fig 6.6).(Compare this scheme with the one in Fig.6.5corresponding to a Pelton turbine). Whereas thevolume of water a Pelton turbine can admit is limitedbecause the water leaving each bucket interferes withthe adjacent ones, the Turgo runner does not presentthis problem. The resulting higher runner speed ofthe Turgo makes direct coupling of turbine and gener-ator more likely, improving its overall efficiency anddecreasing maintenance cost.Cross-fIow turbinesThis impulse turbine, also known as Banki-Michell in remembrance of its inventorsand Ossberger after a company which has been making it for more than 50 years,is used for a wide range of heads overlapping those of Kaplan, Francis and Pelton.It can operate with discharges between 20 litres/sec and 10 m3/sec and headsbetween 1 and 200 m.Water (figure 6.7) enters the turbine, directed by one or more guide-vanes locatedin a transition piece upstream of the runner, and through the first stage of therunner which runs full with a small degree of reaction. Flow leaving the first stageattempt to crosses the open centre of the turbine. As the flow enters the secondstage, a compromise direction is achieved which causes significant shock losses.The runner is built from two or more parallel disks connected near their rims by a series159 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentof curved blades). Their efficiency lower than conventional turbines, but remains atpractically the same level for a wide range of flows and heads (typically about 80%).6.1.1.1.2 Reaction turbinesFrancis turbines.Francis turbines are radial flow reaction turbines, with fixed runner blades andadjustable guide vanes, used for medium heads. In the high speed Francis theadmission is always radial but the outlet is axial. Photograph 6.4 shows a hori-zontal axis Francis turbine.Photo 6.5Photo 6.6160 Layman`s GuidebookThe water proceeds through the turbine as if it was enclosed in a closed conduitpipe, moving from a fixed component, the distributor, to a moving one, the runner,without being at any time in contact with the atmosphere. Figure 6.8 shows avertical section of a horizontal axis machine. The figure illustrates how the guidevanes, whose mission is to control the discharge going into the runner, rotatearound their axes, by connecting rods attached to a large ring that synchronisethe movement off all vanes. It must should be emphasized that the size of thespiral casing contrasts with the lightness of a Pelton casing. In the photo 6.7 therotating ring and the attached links that operate the guide vanes can be seen.Figure 6.9 schematically shows the adjustable vanes and their mechanism, bothin open and closed position. As can be seen the wicket gates can be used to shutoff the flow to the turbine in emergency situations, although their use does notpreclude the installation of a butterfly valve at the entrance to the turbine.Francis turbines can be set in an open flume or attached to a penstock. For smallheads and power open flumes are commonly employed. Steel spiral casings areused for higher heads, designing the casing so that the tangential velocity of thewater is constant along the consecutive sections around the circumference. Asshown in figure 6.8 this implies a changing cross-sectional area of the casing.Figure 6.10 shows a Francis runner in perspective from the outlet end. Smallrunners are usually made in aluminium bronze castings. Large runners arefabricated from curved stainless steel plates, welded to a cast steel hub.Photo 6.7161 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipment162 Layman`s GuidebookIn reaction turbines, to reduce the kinetic energy still remaining in the waterleaving the runner a draft tube or diffuser stands between the turbine and the tailrace. A well-designed draft tube allows, within certain limits, the turbine to beinstalled above the tailwater elevation without losing any head. As the kineticenergy is proportional to the square of the velocity one of the draft tube objectivesis to reduce the outlet velocity. An efficient draft tube would have a conical sectionbut the angle cannot be too large, otherwise flow separation will occur. Theoptimum angle is 7 but to reduce the draft tube length, and therefore its cost,sometimes angles are increased up to 15. Draft tubes are particularly importantin high-speed turbines, where water leaves the runner at very high speeds.In horizontal axis machines the spiral casing must be well anchored in thefoundation to prevent vibration that would reduce the range of dischargesaccepted by the turbine.163 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentKapIan and propeIIer turbinesKaplan and propeller turbines areaxial-flow reaction turbines, generally used forlow heads. The Kaplan turbine has adjustable runner blades and may or may nothave adjustable guide- vanes If both blades and guide-vanes are adjustable it isdescribed as "double-regulated. If the guide-vanes are fixed it is "single-regulated.Unregulated propeller turbines are used when both flow and head remain practi-cally constantThe double-regulated Kaplan, illustrated in figure 6.11 is a vertical axis machinewith a scroll case and a radial wicket-gate configuration as shown in photo 6.8.The flow enters radially inward and makes a right angle turn before entering therunner in an axial direction. The control system is designed so that the variationin blade angle is coupled with the guide-vanes setting in order to obtain the bestefficiency over a wide range of flows. The blades can rotatewith the turbine in operation, through links connected to a ver-tical rod sliding inside the hollow turbine axis.Bulb units are derived from Kaplan turbines, with the generatorcontained in a waterproofed bulb submerged in the flow. Figu-re 6.12 illustrates a turbine where the generator (and gearbox ifrequired) cooled by pressurised air is lodged in the bulb. Onlythe electric cables, duly protected, leave the bulb .Pumps working as turbinesStandard centrifugal pumps may be operated as turbines bydirecting flow through them from pump outlet to inlet. Since theyhave no flow regulation they can operate only under relativelyconstant head and discharge6 .Photo 6.8164 Layman`s Guidebook6.1.1.2 On the basis of the specific speedThe large majority of hydraulic structures spillways, energy dissipators at theoutlet of a hydraulic structure, the reduction of energy losses at the water intake,etc.- are designed and built on the basis of the results obtained from preliminarymodel studies. The behaviour of these models are based on the principles ofhydraulic similitude, including dimensional analysis, by which is meant the analysisof the physical quantities involved in the static and dynamic behaviour of waterflow in a hydraulic structure. The turbine design does not constitute an exceptionand actually turbine manufacturers make use of scaled models. The problem ofsimilarity in this case can be summarised as follows: "Given test data on theperformance characteristics of a certain type of turbine under certain operatingconditions, can the performance characteristic of a geometrically similar machine,under different operating conditions be predicted? If there is a positive answer tothis question the theory of similitude will provide a scientific criterion for cataloguingturbines, that will prove very useful in the process of selection of the turbine bestadapted to the conditions of the scheme..Effectively the answer is positive provided that model and prototype are: Geometrically similar Have the same volumetric coefficient as defined by Q A gH / 2To be geometrically similar the model will be a reduction of the prototype bymaintaining a fixed ratio for all homogeneous lengths. The physical quantitiesinvolved in geometric similarity are length, l, area A and volume V. If the lengthsratio is k, the area ratio will be k2 and the volume ratio k3. For the model andprototype to have the same volumetric coefficient it will be necessary that:QQ gHgH AA HH k' ' ' '= = FH IK221/ 22(6.1)The power ratio between model and prototype will be:PP HQH Q HH k' ' ' '/= = FH IK3 22(6.2)where P= power (kW)But as v 2gH = = ;' 'vv HHThe ratio of the angular velocities will benn v rv r vv rr HH k ' /'/ ' ' ''/= = = FHG IKJ

1 21(6.3)Substituting in (6.2) the value k obtained from (6.3)PP HH HH nn HH nn ' ' ' '' '/ / /= =FH IK FH IK FH IK FH IK3 2 2 2 225 2 2(6.4)165 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentIf the model tests had been done with a head H' of 1 metre and a discharge Q'such that the generated power is 1 kW, and assuming that the model runner hasturned at n' = ns rpm, equation (6.4) would be rewritten:n n PHs = 5 4 / (6.5)ns is known as specific speed. Any turbine, with identical geometric proportions,even if the sizes are different, will have the same specific speed. If the model hadbeen refined to get the optimum hydraulic efficiency, all turbines with the samespecific speed will also have an optimum efficiency.Substituting in eq. (6.4) P/P' by HQ/H'Q' :HQH Q HH nn ' ' ' '= FHG IKJ FHG IKJ52 2;

HQ H nnq= FHG IKJ522and hence if H'=1 and n'=nqn n QHq =1 23 4// (6.6)Some manufacturers define the specific speed nq of a turbine as the speed of aunit of the series of such magnitude that it delivers unit discharge at unit head.The specific speed such as has been defined by eq (6.5) and (6.6) is not adimensionless parameter and therefore its value varies with the kind of unitsemployed in its calculation. The dimensionless parameter is the specific speedNs given by the equation:N PgHs =

b g5 4 /where W is the angular velocity and r the water densityIn this handbook ns is always expressed in S.I. units with the kilowatt as powerunit and is equivalent to 166 Ns. If ns were calculated with the horsepower aspower unit it would correspond to 193.1 Ns.Figure 6.13 shows four different designs of reaction runners and theircorresponding specific speeds, optimised from the efficiency viewpoint. It can beseen that the runner evolves to reconcile with the scheme conditions. A Francisslow runner will be used in high head schemes, where a high-speed runner wouldrun at an excessive speed. As the runner evolves with the specific speed it reachesa point where the lower ring that keep the runner blades together generates toohigh a friction, so from there on the ring is abandoned and the blades are built ascantilevers. From that the Kaplan, propeller and Bulb turbines, used in low headschemes, with specific speeds as high as 1200 were evolved.In general turbine manufacturers specify the specific speed of their turbines. Alarge number of statistic studies undertaken by De Siervo and Lugaresi4, Lugaresi166 Layman`s Guidebookand Massa5, Schweiger and Gregory6, Gordon7, Lindestrom, Kpordze and others,on a large number of schemes has established a correlation, for each type ofturbine, of the specific speed and the net head. Hereunder some of the correlationformulae graphically represented in figure 6.14.Pelton (1 jet) ns = 85.49/ H0.243 (Siervo and Lugaresi, 1978)Francis ns = 3763/ H0.854 (Schweiger and Gregory, 1989)Kaplan ns = 2283/ H0.486 (Schweiger and Gregory, 1989)Cross-flow ns = 513.25/ H0.505 (Kpordze and Warnick, 1983)Propeller ns = 2702/ H0.5 (USBR, 1976)Bulb ns = 1520.26/ H0.2837 (Kpordze and Warnick, 1983)Once the specific speed is known the fundamental dimensions of the turbine canbe easily estimated.In one jet Pelton turbines, the specific speed may fluctuate between 12, for a2000 m head and 26, for a 100 m head. By increasing the number of jets thespecific speed increases as the square root of the number of jets. So then thespecific speed of a four jets Pelton (only exceptionally they have more than sixjets, and then only in vertical axis turbines) is twice the specific speed of one jetPelton. In any case the specific speed of a Pelton exceeds 60 rpm.The diameter of the circumference tangent to the jets is known as the Peltondiameter. The velocity vch leaving the nozzle, assuming a coefficient of losses of0.97 is given byvch gH =0,97 2 (6.7)167 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentIt can be easily demonstrated from a theoretical approach that the tangentialspeed V0 corresponding to the optimum efficiency is one half the jet speed vch.Actually the optimum efficiency is obtained by a velocity slightly lower (0.47 Vj).If we know the runner speed its diameter can be estimated by the following equations:J Dnv gHD gHn Hnch 060 0 47 0 456 260 0 456 238 567= = ==

=

, ,,, (6.8)D is defined as the diameter of the circle describing the buckets centre line.The jet discharge in one jet turbine the total discharge- is given by the cross-sectional area multiplied by the jet velocity:ffvdQ42F= where dj is the diameter of the jet, so thend QvQHjj= =4337 . (6.9)If Q is not known, as the power is P=8.33QH168 Layman`s Guidebookd PHj =2807 3 2. /The diameter dj is the jet diameter and not the nozzle-opening diameter. This diametervaries with the nozzle design, but is accepted that a good nozzle produces such a"vena contracta" that the ratio of the square of both diameters jet and nozzle- isclose to 0.6. The jet diameter would be then 0.775dj . The ratio 'nozzle diameter/Ddiameter' necessary to obtain a good efficiency must lie between 0.12 and 0.06.The diameter of a Turgo runner is one half the diameter of a Pelton for the samepower, so its specific speed will be double. In a cross-flow turbine, as the lengthof the runner accepts very large discharges even with small diameters the specificspeed can reach the 1000 rpm.Francis turbines cover a wide range of specific speeds, going from the 60corresponding to a slow Francis to the 400 that may attain the high speed Francis.The slow runners are used in schemes with up to 350 m head, whereas the fastones are used with heads of only 30 m. According to research undertaken bySchweiger and Gregory8 on low power turbines, the specific speeds of turbinesunder 2 MW are sensibly lower than those corresponding to bigger turbines.Figure 6.15 shows schematically in the upper part of the graphic the runner of aFrancis turbine and the entrance velocity triangles for slow, medium and high-speed169 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentrunners in the bottom. The absolute velocity C0 is the vectorial sum of the movingframe velocity V0 and the relative velocity W0. The absolute velocity C0 has a radialcomponent Cm0 perpendicular to the turbine axis, and a tangential Cu0 that in thescheme of figure 6.15 would be perpendicular to the drawing plan. Multiplying Cm0 bythe outlet section of the distributor right-angled with it- will give the turbine discharge.When the projection of the absolute velocity C0 over the moving frame velocity V0is bigger than V0 the runner is an slow one; If both are of the same order therunner is a normal one and if is smaller is a fast one.With the aid of figure 6.16 the coefficient of the entrance velocity v0e, the coefficientof the exit velocity v0s, and the ratio b/D (respectively height of distributor andinternal diameter of distributor) can be estimated in function of the specific speedns. The moving frame velocity V0 is given byJ v gHe 0 0 2 =and the runner diameter D0 byD v gHne0 060 2=

(6.11)and the exit diameter Ds byD v gHns s= 60 20

(6.12)whenever the turbine axis does not cross the diffuser. If it does it would benecessary to enlarge the diameter to compensate by the loss of section causedby the axis, a section easy to compute in function of the turbine torque.170 Layman`s GuidebookThe Kaplan turbines exhibit much higher specific speeds: 325 for a 45-m headand 954 for a 5-m head. Nowadays these turbines, in the range of power used insmall hydro plants, are standardised, using a certain number of commoncomponents with the objective of decreasing their cost price. Some manufactu-res can supply all possible configurations by using only 6 runner diameters 1.8,2.0, 2.2, 2.5, 2.8 and 3.2 metres-, three turbine axis diameters per runner, threedistributor configurations, and three different speed increasers.In the preliminary project phase the runner diameter can be calculated by theformula (D and H in m and Q in m3/sec)D QH=2 2 , (6.13) .6.1.2 Turbine selection criteriaThe type, geometry and dimensions of the turbine will be fundamentally conditionedby the following criteria: Net head Range of discharges through the turbine Rotational speed Cavitation problems CostNet headThe gross head is the vertical distance, between the water surface level at theintake and at the tailrace for reaction turbines and the nozzle level for impulseturbines. Once the gross head is known, the net head can be computed by simplysubtracting the losses along its path, as in example 5.6.The first criterion to take into account in the turbine's selection is the net head. Table6.1 specifies for each turbine type its range of operating heads. The table showssome overlapping, so that for a certain head several types of turbines can be used.TabIe 6.1 Range of headsTurbine type Head range in metresKaplan and Propeller 2 < H < 40Francis 10 < H < 350Pelton 50 < H <1300Michell-Banki 3 < H < 250Turgo 50 < H < 250The selection is particularly critical in low-head schemes, where to be profitablelarge discharges must be handled. When contemplating schemes with a headbetween 2 and 5 m, and a discharge between 10 and 100 m3/sec, runners with1.6 3.2 metres diameter are required, coupled through a speed increaser to anasynchronous generator. The hydraulic conduits in general and water intakes inparticular are very large and require very large civil works, with a cost that generallyexceeds the cost of the electromechanical equipment.171 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipment172 Layman`s GuidebookIn order to reduce the overall cost (civil works plus equipment) and more specificallythe cost of the civil works, several configurations, nowadays considered as classic,have been devised 9. All of them include the only turbine type available for this jobthe Kaplan- in a double or a single regulated version.The selection criteria for such turbines are well known: Range of discharges Net head Geomorphology of the terrain Environmental requirements (both visual and sonic) Labour costThe configurations differ by how the flow goes through the turbine (axial, radial,or mixed) the turbine closing system (gate or siphon), the speed increaser type(parallel gears, right angle drive, epicycloidal gears).For those interested in low-head schemes please read the paper presented by J.Fonkenell to HIDROENERGIA 9111 dealing with selection of configurations,enclosing diagrams with relative costs to facilitate the appropriate choice..173 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentConfiguration FIow CIosing Speedsystem increaserVertical Kaplan Radial Guide-vanes Parallel 6.17Vertical semi-Kaplan siphon Radial Siphon Parallel 6.18Inverse semi-Kaplan siphon Radial Siphon Parallel 6.19Inclined semi-Kaplan siphon Axial Siphon Epicycloidal 6.20Kaplan S Axial Gate valve Parallel 6.21Kaplan S right angle drive Axial Gate valve Epicycloidal 6.22Kaplan inclined right angle Axial Gate valve Conical 6.23Semi-Kaplan in pit Axial Gate valve Epicycloidal 6.24Siphons are reliable, economic, and prevent runaway turbine speed, but are verynoisy. Underground powerhouses are best to mitigate the visual and sonic impact,but are only viable with an S, a right angle drive or a pit configuration.The right angle drive configuration permits the use of a standard generator turningat 1500 rpm, reliable, compact and cheap, by using a double step speed increaserplanetary gears followed by a conical gear-. The S configuration is becoming verypopular although has the disadvantage that the turbine axis has to cross either theentrance or the outlet pipe with consequent headloss. A recent study shows that, ina 4 m head scheme with a 24 m3/sec discharge, the right angle drive configurationoffered an overall efficiency 3% - 5% higher than the S configuration.The pit configuration has the advantage of easy access to all the equipmentcomponents, in particular the coupling of turbine and speed increaser, the speedincreaser itself and the generator, facilitating inspection, maintenance and repair.The hydraulic conduits are simplified and gives a higher specific volume.Since the double regulated turbine has a minimum practical discharge close to20% of the rated discharge whereas in a single regulated it is close to 40%,whenever a scheme has to cope with flows as low as 40% of the nominal one, thedouble regulated turbine should be selected.As a turbine can only accept discharges between the nominal and the practicalminimum, it may be advantageous to install several smaller turbines instead of aone large. The turbines would be sequentially started, so all of the turbines inoperation except one will operate at their nominal discharges and therefore willexhibit a higher efficiency. Using two or three smaller turbines will mean a lowerunit weight and volume and will facilitate transport and assembly on the site. Therotational speed of a turbine is inversely proportional to its diameter, so its torquewill be lower and the speed increaser smaller and more reliable. The use of severalturbines instead of one large one with the same total power, will result in a lowerratio kilograms of turbine/cubic meter of operating flow, although the ratioequipment cost / cubic meter of operating flow will be larger.Increasing the number of turbines decreases the diameter of their runners,andconsequently the support components in the powerhouse will be smaller andlighter. As the water conduits are identical the formwork, usually rather sophisticated,174 Layman`s Guidebookcan be reused several times decreasing its influence in the concrete cost.Notwithstanding this, generally more turbine means more generators, more controls,higher costs.DischargeA single value of the flow has no significance. It is necessary to know the flowregime, commonly represented by the Flow Duration Curve (FDC) 12 as explainedin chapter 3, sections 3.3 and 3.6.The rated flow and net head determine the set of turbine types applicable to thesite and the flow environment. Suitable turbines are those for which the givenrated flow and net head plot within the operational envelopes (figure 6.26). Apoint defined as above by the flow and the head will usually plot within several ofthese envelopes. All of those turbines are appropriate for the job, and it will benecessary to compute installed power and electricity output against costs beforetaking a decision. It should be remembered that the envelopes vary frommanufacturer to manufacturer and they should be considered only as a guide.Specific speedThe specific speed constitutes a reliable criterion for the selection of the turbine,without any doubt more precise than the conventional enveloping curves, justmentioned.If we wish to produce electricity in a scheme with 100-m net head, using a 800kW turbine directly coupled to a standard 1500-rpm generator we should beginby computing the specific speed according equation (6.5).ns = =1500 800100 1341 25 ,With this specific speed the only possible selection is a Francis turbine. Otherwiseif we accept the possibility of using a speed increaser with a ratio up to 1.3, theturbine itself could turn from 500 to 1500 rpm, corresponding respectively to specificspeeds of 45 and 134. In those conditions it could be possible to select, in additionto the Francis, a Turgo, a cross-flow or a 2 jet Pelton. The spectrum of appropriateturbines has been considerably enlarged by the presence of the speed increaser.If we intend to install a 1500 kW turbine in a 400 m head scheme, directly coupledto a 1000 rpm generator, we will begin computing the specific speed ns:n n PHs = = =1 25 1 251000 1500400 21 65, , ,which indicates as the only option a 1 jet Pelton, with a diameter D, computed byequation (6.8):m D 77 , 01000400 567 , 38= =175 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipment176 Layman`s GuidebookCavitationWhen the hydrodynamic pressure in a liquid flow falls below the vapour pressureof the liquid, there is a formation of the vapour phase. This phenomenon inducesthe formation of small individual bubbles that are carried out of the low-pressureregion by the flow and collapse in regions of higher pressure. The formation ofthese bubbles and their subsequent collapse gives rise to what is called cavitation.Experience shows that these collapsing bubbles create very high impulsepressures accompanied by substantial noise (in fact a turbine undergoing cavitationsounds as though gravel is passing through it). The repetitive action of suchpressure waves close to the liquid-solid boundary results in pitting of the material.With time this pitting degenerates into cracks formed between the pits and themetal is spalled from the surface. In a relatively short time the turbine is severelydamaged and will require to be shut-off and repaired if possible.Experience shows that there is a coefficient, called Thoma's sigma sT, whichdefines precisely enough under which parameters cavitation takes place. Thiscoefficient is given by the equationsT = Hsv / H (6.13)where Hsv is the net positive suction head and H the net head of the scheme.According to figure 6.27Hsv = Hatm z Hvap + Ve2 / 2g + Hl (6.14)Where: Hsv is the net positive suction headHatm is the atmospheric pressure headHvap is the water vapour pressurez is the elevation above the tailwater surface of the critical locationVe is the average velocity in the tailraceHl is the head loss in the draft tubeNeglecting the draft-tube losses and the exit velocity head loss, Thoma's sigmawill be given bysT=(Hatm-Hvap-z)/H (6.15)To avoid cavitation the turbine should be installed at least at a height over thetailrace water level zp given by the equation:zp=Hatm-Hvap-sTH (6.16)The Thoma's sigma is usually obtained by a model test, and it is a value furnishedby the turbine manufacturer. Notwithstanding the above mentioned statistic studiesalso relates Thoma's sigma with the specific speed. Thereunder are specified theequation giving T as a function of ns for the Francis and Kaplan turbines:Francis: sT = 7.54x10-5xns1.41 (6.17)Kaplan: sT = 6.40x10-5xns1.46 (6.18)It must be remarked that Hvap decreases with the altitude, from roughly 10.3 m atthe sea level to 6.6 m at 3000 m above sea level. So then a Francis turbine witha specific speed of 150, working under a 100 m head (with a corresponding T =0.088), that in a plant at sea level, will require a setting:z = 10.3 0.09 0.088 x 100 = 1.41 minstalled in a plant at 2000 m above the sea level will requirez = 8.1 0.09 0.088 x 100 = -0.79 ma setting requiring a heavy excavation177 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentRotationaI speedAccording to (6.5) the rotational speed of a turbine is a function of its specificspeed, and of the scheme power and net head. In the small hydro schemesstandard generators should be installed when possible, so in the turbine selectionit must be borne in mind that the turbine, either coupled directly or through aspeed increaser, should reach the synchronous speed, as given in table 6.2TabIe 6.2 Generator synchronisation speed (rpm)Number Frequency Number Frequencyof poles 50 Hz 60Hz of poles 50 Hz 60Hz2 3000 3600 16 375 4504 1500 1800 18 333 4006 1000 1200 20 300 3608 750 900 22 272 32710 600 720 24 250 30012 500 600 26 231 27714 428 540 28 214 257Runaway speedEach runner profile is characterised by a maximum runaway speed. This is thespeed, which the unit can theoretically attain when the hydraulic power is at itsmaximum and the electrical load has become disconnected. Depending on thetype of turbine, it can attain 2 or 3 times the nominal speed. Table 6.3 shows thisratio for conventional and unconventional turbinesIt must be remembered that the cost of both generator and gearbox may beincreased when the runaway speed is higher, since they must be designed towithstand it.TabIe 6.3Turbine type Normal speed n (rpm) Runaway speed nmax/nKaplan single regulated 75-100 2.0 2.4Kaplan double regulated 75-150 2.8 3.2Francis 500 1500 1.8 2.2Pelton 500 1500 1.8 2.0Cross-flow 60 1000 1.8 2.0Turgo 600 1000 26.1.3 Turbine efficiencyThe efficiency guaranteed by turbine manufacturers is that which may be verifiedin accordance with the "International Code for the field acceptance tests of hydraulicturbines (publication IEC-141) or, if applied, in accordance with the "InternationalCode for model acceptance tests (publication IEC-193). It is defined as the ratioof power supplied by the turbine (mechanical power transmitted by the turbineshaft) to the absorbed power (hydraulic power equivalent to the measureddischarge under the net head).178 Layman`s GuidebookIt is to be noted that for impulse turbines (Pelton, Turgo and Cross-Flow), the head ismeasured at the point of impact of the jet, which is always above the downstreamwater level. This effectively amounts to a reduction of the head. The difference is notnegligible for low-head schemes, when comparing the performance of impulseturbines with those of reaction turbines that use the entire available head.Due to the head losses generated in reaction turbines the runner only uses a headHu lower than the net head Hn , such as defined in figure 6.27. These losses areessentially friction losses in the spiral case, guide-vanes and runner blades plusvelocity head losses in the draft tube. The drafttube or diffuser is designed to recoverthe biggest possible fraction of the velocity head generated by the velocity of thewater leaving the blades. This loss is particularly critical in the high specific speedrunners, where it may reach up to 50% of the net head (whereas in the slow Francisrunner it rarely exceeds 3%-4%). The head used by the runner is in fact the equivalentto the net head diminished by the kinetic energy dissipated in the draft-tube, quantifiedby the expression Ve / 2g, where Ve is the average velocity of the water leaving thedraft-tube. To reduce the velocity the draft tube is commonly designed with a conicalsection. Small divergence angles require long, and consequently costly, diffusers,but otherwise the angle cannot exceed about 7 without danger of flow separation.Trying to find equilibrium between flow separation and cost some designers increasethe angle up to about 15. The draft-tube design has such implications on the turbineoperation that it is strongly recommended to leave it to the turbine manufacturer orat least fabricate it under his advice and drawings.At present no IEC code defines the net head across a cross-flow turbine or itsefficiency. Care must be taken in comparing reaction turbine efficiencies withcross-flow efficiencies 11. Anyhow cross-flow peak efficiencies calculated fromthe net head definition given by the IEC code for impulse turbines, reach a ceilingslightly over 80%, but retain this efficiency value under discharges as low as asixth of the maximum.Fig 6.28 indicates the mean efficiency guaranteed by manufacturers for severaltypes of turbine. To estimate the overall efficiency the turbine efficiency must be179 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentmultiplied by the efficiencies of the speed increaser (if used) and the alternator.A turbine is designed to operate at or near its best efficiency point, usually at 80per cent of the maximum flow rate, and as flow deviates from that particulardischarge so does the turbine's hydraulic efficiency.Double regulated Kaplan and Pelton turbines can operate satisfactorily over awide range of flow -upwards from about one fifth of rated discharge. Singleregulated Kaplans have acceptable efficiency upward from one third and Francisturbines from one half of rated discharge. Below 40% of the rated discharge,Francis turbines may show instability resulting in vibration or mechanical shock.Propeller turbines with fixed guide vanes and blades can operate satisfactorilyonly over a very limited range close to their rated discharge. It should be notedthat with single-regulated propeller turbines the efficiency is generally better whenit is the runner that is adjustable.6.1.4 Turbine performance characteristicsTurbine manufacturers use scaled models to obtain different curves correlatingtheir characteristics.Torque-veIocity characteristicThis graphically represents the correlation between the rotational speed and theturbine torque for different admission degrees. According to figure 6.29 the torque,for the same admission degree, decreases linearly with the rotational speed. Themaximum torque corresponds to a null speed, hence the high starting torque ofhydraulic turbines. The speed corresponding to the point where the curve cut thehorizontal axis is called runaway speed.180 Layman`s GuidebookPower-veIocity characteristicThis represents graphically how under a given head the power evolves, at differentdegrees of admission, with the velocity. The parabolic curves (figure 6.30) cutthe horizontal axis in two different points, corresponding respectively to the nullspeed and the runaway speed.FIow-veIocity characteristicThis practically linear (figure 6.31) representing the flow admitted by the turbineat different speeds, under a constant head, and a variable admission degree. Inthe Pelton turbines the straight lines are almost horizontal; drooping in the slowFrancis (when the speed increases the turbines accept less and less flow), andascendant in the fast Francis.Turbine performanceIn the flow-velocity plane, by connecting the points that have the same efficiency,iso-efficiency curves are obtained (figure 6.32), that look like contour lines on atopographic map. Compounding these curves with the power as the third axis,they will form a sort of "hill, the so called "hill charts.6.1.5 Turbine performance under new site conditionsWhen rehabilitating a site there are many occasions when, the turbine being181 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentirreparable, an existing second hand turbine with rating parameters somewhatsimilar to the site parameters can be installed.It is well known that the flow, speed, and power output for any turbine are sitespecific and are functions of the net head under which the turbine operates.According to the similarity laws, a turbine manufactured to operate under certaindesign parameters, characterised by the suffix 1, will show different characteristicsoperating under the new parameters, characterised by the suffix 2. The flow "Qlike the flow through an orifice is proportional to H:QQ HH Q Q HH2121 2 1 21= = thereIore The speed "n of a turbine is proportional to the flow velocity within the turbine so:nn HH n n HH2121 2 1 21= = thereIore AaA182 Layman`s GuidebookWhen the turbine installed at the site is run at "n2 speed, the power output "P isproportional to the product of head and flow:PP QQ HH HH or P P HH212121213 22 1 213 2= = FHG IKJ = FHG IKJ/ /The turbine shaft is designed to transmit a certain torque (T) directly proportional183 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentto the power and inversely proportionally to the turbine speed.TT PP nn HH HH HH212112213 2121 221= = FHG IKJ FHG IKJ =/ /As the torque is proportional to the cube of the shaft diameterd d HHs s 2 1 211 3= FHG IKJ /It can be deduced that if the shaft of the proposed turbine is adequatelydimensioned, it will be adequate for the new site provided the head is smallerthan the head for which the turbine was designed. The same reasoning can beapplied to every turbine component: wicket-gates, blades, seals etc. The speedincreaser will also have to be checked. If the new head is slightly lower than theoriginal, both turbine and speed increaser can be used without difficulties. If thehead is slightly higher, both the speed increaser and the generator should bechecked to verify that they could handle the increased power. If the new head issignificantly higher than the original one, the torque shaft should be checked andprobably reinforced, but the generator could remain unchanged if the speedincreaser has been modified so it runs at the proper speed. If the new turbine is areaction turbine its setting also needs to be recalculated.6.2 Speed increasersWhen the turbine and the generator operate at the same speed and can be placedso that their shafts are in line, direct coupling is the right solution; virtually nopower losses are incurred and maintenance is minimal. Turbine manufactureswill recommend the type of coupling to be used, either rigid or flexible although aflexible coupling that can tolerate certain misalignment is usually recommended.In many instances, particularly in the lowest power range, turbines run at lessthan 400 rpm, requiring a speed increaser to meet the 1 000-1 500 rpm of stan-dard alternators. In the range of powers contemplated in small hydro schemesthis solution is always more economical than the use of a custom made alterna-tor.6.2.1 Speed increaser typesSpeed increasers according to the gears used in their constructionare classified asParaIIeI-shaftusing helicoid gears set on parallel axis and are especially attractive for mediumpower applications. Figure 6.33 shows a vertical configuration, coupled to a ver-tical Kaplan turbine.BeveI gears:commonly limited to low power applications using spiral bevel gears for a 90drive. Figure 6.34 shows a two-phased speed increaser: the first is a planetarygearbox and the second a bevel gear drive.184 Layman`s GuidebookEpicycIoidaI:extremely compact and specially adequate for turbines over2 MW capacity.6.2.2 Speed increaser designThe gearbox should be designed to ensure, under the mostunfavourable conditions, the correct alignment of itscomponents. They are usually fabricated in welded steelwith heavy stiffeners to resist the turbine torque withoutapparent deformation.A lack of synchronism, a full load rejection, or any otheraccident in the system can generate very high criticalstresses on the gears. To protect gears against theseexceptional strains the speed increaser should incorporatea torque limiter, so that the connector breaks when thereis an abnormal force.Photo 6.9185 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentTo ensure the required level of reliability good lubrication is essential. It is veryimportant that the quality, volume, viscosity and temperature of the oil alwaysstay within specifications. A double lubrication system with two pumps and two oilfilters would contribute to the system reliability.Speed increasers are designed according to international standards (AGMA 2001,B88 or DIN 3990) using very conservative design criteria. These criteria conflict withthe need to reduce costs, but no cost savings are possible or recommended withouta thorough analysis of the fatigue strains, and a careful shaving of the heat treatedgears, a satisfactory stress relieving of the welded boxes, all of which are essential toensure the durability of a speed increaser. Metallurgical factors including knowledgeof the respective advantages and disadvantages of hard casing or nitruring of gearsare also essential to optimise the speed increaser.Selection of journal bearings is also crucial. Under 1 MW the use of roller bearingsis acceptable, but for a higher power it becomes difficult to find roller bearings capableof sustaining their role for the required life of the increaser. That is why from 1 MWonwards designers prefer to use hydrodynamic lubricated bearings that present thefollowing advantages: The life of the roller bearings is limited by fatigue whereas the hydrodynamicbearings have a practical unlimited life. Hydrodynamic bearings permit a certain oil contamination, whereas rollerbearings do not.6.2.3 Speed increaser maintenanceAt least 70% of speed increaser malfunctioning is due to the poor quality or to thelack of the lubricant oil. Frequently the oil filters clog or water enters the lubricationcircuit. Maintenance should be scheduled either based on predetermined periodsof time or better by periodic analysis of the lubricant to check that it meetsspecifications.Speed increasers substantially increase the noise in the powerhouse and requirecareful maintenance as their friction losses can exceed 2% of the outlet power,so other alternatives have been investigated. Figure 6.35 shows a successfulapplication of a flat belt as speed increaser. In smaller plants the use of V beltsare also becoming popular.6.3 GeneratorsGenerators transform mechanical energy into electrical energy. Although mostearly hydroelectric systems were of the direct current variety to match earlycommercial electrical systems, nowadays only three-phase alternating currentgenerators are used in normal practice. Depending on the characteristics of thenetwork supplied, the producer can choose between: Synchronous generators equipped with a DC excitation system (rotating orstatic) associated with a voltage regulator, to provide voltage, frequency andphase angle control before the generator is connected to the grid and supply186 Layman`s Guidebookthe reactive energy required by the power system when the generator is tiedinto the grid. Synchronous generators can run isolated from the grid and pro-duce power since excitation is not grid-dependent Asynchronous generators are simple squirrel-cage induction motors with nopossibility of voltage regulation and running at a speed directly related to systemfrequency. They draw their excitation current from the grid, absorbing reactiveenergy by their own magnetism. Adding a bank of capacitors can compensate forthe absorbed reactive energy. They cannot generate when disconnected fromthe grid because are incapable of providing their own excitation current.Synchronous generators are more expensive than asynchronous generators andare used in power systems where the output of the generator represents a substan-tial proportion of the power system load. Asynchronous generators are cheaperand are used in large grids where their output is an insignificant proportion of thepower system load. Their efficiency is 2 to 4 per cent lower than the efficiency ofsynchronous generators over the entire operating range. In general, when thepower exceeds 5000 kVA a synchronous generator is installed.Recently, variable-speed constant-frequency systems (VSG), in which turbine speedis permitted to fluctuate widely, while the voltage and frequency are kept constantand undistorted, have entered the market. This system can even "synchronise theunit to the grid before it starts rotating. The key to the system is the use of a series-resonant converter in conjunction with a double feed machine12. Unfortunately itscost price is still rather high and the maximum available power too low.The working voltage of the generator varies with its power. The standard generationvoltages are 380 V or 430 V up to 1400 kVA and at 6000/6600 for bigger installed187 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentpower. Generation at 380 V or 430 V allows the use of standard distributortransformers as outlet transformers and the use of the generated current to feedinto the plant power system. Generating at medium voltage requires anindependent transformer MT/LT to supply the plant services.6.3.1 Generator configurationsGenerators can be manufactured with horizontal or vertical axis, independentlyof the turbine configuration. Figure 6.36 shows a vertical axis Kaplan turbineturning at 214 rpm directly coupled to a custom made 28 poles alternator. Photo6.9 shows the same type of turbine coupled to a standard generator through aparallel gear speed increaser. A flywheel is frequently used to smooth-out speedvariations and assists the turbine control.Another criterion characterising generators is how their bearings are positioned.For example it is common practice to install a generator with extra-reinforcedbearings supporting the cantilevered runner of a Francis turbine. In that way theturbine axis does not need to cross the draft tube so improving the overall efficiency.The same solution is frequently used with Pelton turbines.When these generators are small, they have an open cooling system, but forlarger units it is recommended to use a closed cooling circuit provided with air-water heat exchangers.6.3.2 ExcitersThe exciting current for the synchronous generator can be supplied by a smallDC generator, known as the exciter, to be driven from the main shaft. The powerabsorbed by this dc generator amounts to 0.5% - 1.0% of the total generatorpower. Nowadays a static exciter usually replaces the DC generator, but thereare still many rotating exciters in operation.188 Layman`s GuidebookRotating exciters.The field coils of both the main generator and the exciter generator are usuallymounted on the main shaft. In larger generators a pilot exciter is also used. Thepilot exciter can be started from its residual magnetic field and it then supplies theexciting current to the main exciter, which in turn supplies the exciting current forthe rotor of the generator. In such way the current regulation takes place in thesmaller machine.BrushIess excitersA small generator has its field coils on the stator and generates AC current in therotor windings. A solid state rectifier rotates with the shaft, converting the ACoutput from the small generator into the DC which is the supplied to the rotatingfield coils of the main generator without the need of brushes. The voltage regulationis achieved by controlling the current in the field coils of the small generator.Static excitersThe exciting current is taken out, via a transformer, from the output terminals of themain generator. This AC current is then rectified in a solid state rectifier and injectedin the generator field coils. When the generator is started there is no current flowingthrough the generator field coils. The residual magnetic field, aided if needed by abattery, permits generation to start to be then stabilised when the voltage at thegenerator terminals reaches a preset value. This equipment is easy to maintain hasa good efficiency and the response to the generator voltage oscillations is very good.6.3.3 Voltage regulation and synchronisation6.3.3.1 Asynchronous generatorsAn asynchronous generator needs to absorb a certain power from the three-phase mains supply to ensure its magnetisation even, if in theory, the generatorcan receive its reactive power from a separate source such as a bank of capacitors.The mains supply defines the frequency of the stator rotating flux and hence thesynchronous speed above which the rotor shaft must be driven.On start-up, the turbine is accelerated up to 90-95% of the synchronous speed ofthe generator, when a velocity relay close the main line switch. The generatorpasses immediately to hyper-synchronism and the driving and resisting torqueare balanced in the area of stable operation.6.3.3.2 Synchronous generatorsThe synchronous generator is started before connecting it to the mains by theturbine rotation. By gradually accelerating the turbine the generator is synchronisedwith the mains, regulating the voltage, frequency and rotating sense, When thegenerator reaches a velocity close to synchronous, the exciter regulates its fieldcoils current so the generator voltage is identical to the mains voltage.When the synchronous generator is connected to an isolated net, the voltagecontroller maintains a predefined constant voltage, independent of the load. If it isconnected to the main supply, the controller maintains the reactive power at apredefined level.189 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipment6.4 Turbine controlTurbines are designed for a certain net head and discharge. Any deviation fromthese parameters must be compensated for, by opening or closing control devicessuch as the wicket-vanes or gate valves to keep constant, either the outlet power,the level of the water surface in the intake or the turbine discharge.In schemes connected to an isolated net, the parameter to be controlled is therunner speed, which control the frequency. The generator becomes overloadedand the turbine slows-down. In this case there are basically two approaches tocontrol the runner speed: either by controlling the water flow to the turbine or bykeeping the water flow constant and adjusting the electric load by an electricballast load connected to the generator terminals.In the first approach, speed (frequency) regulation is normally accomplishedthrough flow control; once a gate opening is calculated, the actuator gives thenecessary instruction to the servomotor, which results in an extension or retractionof the servo's rod. To ensure that the rod actually reaches the calculated position,feedback is provided to the electronic actuator. These devices are called "speedgovernorsIn the second approach it is assumed that, at full load, constant head and flow,the turbine will operate at design speed, so maintaining full load from the generator;this will run at a constant speed. If the load decreases the turbine will tend toincrease its speed. An electronic sensor, measuring the frequency, detects thedeviation and a reliable and inexpensive electronic load governor, switches onpreset resistances and so maintains the system frequency accurately.The controllers that follow the first approach do not have any power limit. TheElectronic Load Governors, working according to the second approach rarelyexceeds 100 kW capacity.6.4.1 Speed GovernorsA governor is a combination of devices and mechanisms, which detect speeddeviation and convert it into a change in servomotor position. A speed-sensingelement detects the deviation from the set point; this deviation signal is convertedand amplified to excite an actuator, hydraulic or electric, that controls the waterflow to the turbine. In a Francis turbine, where to reduce the water flow you needto rotate the wicket-gates a powerful governor is required to overcome the hydraulicand frictional forces and to maintain the wicket-gates in a partially closed positionor to close them completely.Several types of governors are available varying from purely mechanical to mechanical-hydraulic to electrohydraulic. The purely mechanical governor is used with fairly smallturbines, because its control valve is easy to operate and does not requires a bigeffort. These governors use a flyball mass mechanism driven by the turbine shaft.The output from this device the flyball axis descends or ascends according to theturbine speed- directly drive the valve located at the entrance to the turbine.190 Layman`s GuidebookThe most commonly-used type is the oil-pressure governor (Fig 6.37) that alsouses a flyball mechanism lighter and more precise than that used in a purelymechanical governor. When the turbine is overloaded, the flyballs slowdown, theballs drop, and the sleeve of the pilot valve rises to open access to the upperchamber of the servomotor. The oil under pressure enters the upper chamber ofthe servomotor to rotate the wicket-gates mechanism and increase the flow, andconsequently the rotational speed and the frequency.In an electrohydraulic governor a sensor located on the generator shaftcontinuously senses the turbine speed. The input is fed into a summing junction,where it is compared to a speed reference. If the speed sensor signal differs fromthe reference signal, it emits an error signal (positive or negative) that, onceamplified, is sent to the servomotor so this can act in the required sense. Ingeneral the actuator is powered by a hydraulic power unit (photo 6.10) consistingof a sump for oil storage, an electric motor operated pump to supply high pressureoil to the system, an accumulator where the oil under pressure is stored, oil con-trol valves and a hydraulic cylinder. All these regulation systems, as have beendescribed, operate by continuously adjusting back and forth the wicket-gatesposition. To provide quick and stable adjustment of the wicket-gates, and/or ofthe runner blades, with the least amount of over or under speed deviations duringsystem changes a further device is needed. In oil pressure governors, as may beseen in figure 6.37, this is achieved by interposing a "dash pot that delays theopening of the pilot valve. In electrohydraulic governors the degree of sophisticationis much greater, so that the adjustment can be proportional, integral and derivative(PID) giving a minimum variation in the controlling process.An asynchronous generator connected to a large net, from which it takes its reactivepower to generate its own magnetism, does not need any controller, because itsfrequency is controlled by the mains. Notwithstanding this, when the generator is191 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentdisconnected from the mains the turbine accelerates up to runaway speed withinherent danger for the generator and the speed increaser, if one is used. In such acase it is necessary to interrupt the water flow, rapidly enough to prevent the turbineaccelerating, but at the same time minimising any waterhammer effect in the penstock.To ensure the control of the turbine speed by regulating the water flow, a certaininertia of the rotating components is required. Additional inertia can be providedby a flywheel on the turbine or generator shaft. When the main switch disconnectsthe generator the power excess accelerates the flywheel; later, when the switchreconnects the load, the deceleration of this inertia flywheel supplies additionalpower that helps to minimise speed variation. The basic equation of the rotatingsystem is the following:J ddt T Tt L

= where: J = moment of inertia of the rotating componentsW = angular velocityTt = torque of turbineTL= torque due to loadWhen Tt is equal to TL, dW/dt = 0 and W = constant, so the operation is steady.When Tt is greater or smaller than TL, W is not constant and the governor mustintervene so that the turbine output matches the generator load. But it should notbe forgotten that the control of the water flow introduces a new factor: the speedvariations on the water column formed by the waterways.The flywheel effect of the rotating components is stabilising whereas the watercolumn effect is destabilising. The start-up time of the rotating system, the timerequired to accelerate the unit from zero rotational speed to operating speed isgiven by192 Layman`s GuidebookT JP WR nPm = =

2 2 25086where the rotating inertia of the unit is given by the weight of all rotating partsmultiplied by the square of the radius of gyration: WR2 , P is the rated power in kWand n the turbine speed (rpm)The water starting time, needed to accelerate the water column from zero velocityto some other velocity V, at a constant head H is given by:T LJgHw=

sec.where H = gross head across the turbine (m)L = length of water column (m)V = velocity of the water (m/s)g = gravitational constant (9.81 m s-2)To achieve good regulation is necessary that Tm/Tw > 4. Realistic water startingtimes do not exceed 2.5 sec. If it is larger, modification of the water conduits mustbe considered either by decreasing the velocity or the length of the conduits byinstalling a surge tank. The possibility of adding a flywheel to the generator toincrease the inertia rotating parts can also considered. It should be noted that anincrease of the inertia of the rotating parts will improve the waterhammer effectand decrease the runaway speed.6.5 Switchgear equipmentIn many countries the electricity supply regulations place a statutory obligation onthe electric utilities to maintain the safety and quality of electricity supply withindefined limits. The independent producer must operate his plant in such a way thatthe utility is able to fulfil its obligations. Therefore various associated electrical devicesare required inside the powerhouse for the safety and protection of the equipment.Switchgear must be installed to control the generators and to interface them withthe grid or with an isolated load. It must provide protection for the generators,main transformer and station service transformer. The generator breaker, eitherair, magnetic or vacuum operated, is used to connect or disconnect the generatorfrom the power grid. Instrument transformers, both power transformers (PTs) andcurrent transformers (CTs) are used to transform high voltages and currents downto more manageable levels for metering. The generator control equipment is usedto control the generator voltage, power factor and circuit breakers.The asynchronous generator protection must include, among other devices: areverse-power relay giving protection against motoring; differential current relaysagainst internal faults in the generator stator winding; a ground-fault relay providingsystem backup as well as generator ground-fault protection, etc. The powertransformer protection includes an instantaneous over-current relay and a timedover-current relay to protect the main transformer when a fault is detected in thebus system or an internal fault in the main power transformer occurs.193 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipment194 Layman`s GuidebookThe independent producer is responsible for earthing arrangements within hisinstallation. The independent producer's earthing arrangement must be designedin consultation with the public utility. The earthing arrangement will be dependenton the number of units in use and the independent producer's own systemconfiguration and method of operation.Metering equipment must be installed at the point of supply to record measure-ments to the requirements of the electric utility.Figure 6.38 shows a single-line diagram corresponding to a power plant with asingle unit. In the high voltage side there is a line circuit breaker and a linedisconnection switch - combined with a grounding switch - to disconnect the powergenerating unit and main transformer from the transmission line. Metering isachieved through the corresponding P.T and C.T. A generator circuit breaker isincluded as an extra protection for the generator unit. A transformer providesenergy for the operation of intake gates, shutoff valves, servomotors, oilcompressors etc. in the station service.Greater complexity may be expected in multiunit stations where flexibility andcontinuity of service are important.6.6 Automatic controlSmall hydro schemes are normally unattended and operated through an automaticcontrol system. Because not all power plants are alike, it is almost impossible todetermine the extent of automation that should be included in a given system, butsome requirements are of general application13:a)All equipment must be provided with manual controls and meters totallyindependent of the programmable controller to be used only for initial start upand for maintenance procedures.b)The system must include the necessary relays and devices to detect malfunc-tioning of a serious nature and then act to bring the unit or the entire plant to asafe de-energised condition.c)Relevant operational data of the plant should be collected and made readilyavailable for making operating decisions, and stored in a database for laterevaluation of plant performance.d)An intelligent control system should be included to allow for full plant operationin an unattended environment.e)It must be possible to access the control system from a remote location andoverride any automatic decisions.f)The system should be able to communicate with similar units, up and downstream,for the purpose of optimising operating procedures.g)Fault anticipation constitutes an enhancement to the control system. Using an expertsystem, fed with baseline operational data, it is possible to anticipate faults beforethey occur and take corrective action so that the fault does not occur.The system must be configured by modules. An analogue-to-digital conversionmodule for measurement of water level, wicket-gate position, blade angles,instantaneous power output, temperatures, etc. A digital-to-analogue converter195 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentmodule to drive hydraulic valves, chart recorders, etc. A counter module to countgenerated kWh pulses, rain gauge pulses, flow pulses, etc. and a "smart teleme-try module providing the interface for offsite communications, via dial-up telephonelines or radio link. This modular system approach is well suited to the widelyvarying requirements encountered in hydropower control, and permits bothhardware and software to be standardised. Cost reduction can be realised throughthe use of a standard system; modular software allows for easy maintenance.Automatic control systems can significantly reduce the cost of energy productionby reducing maintenance and increasing reliability, while running the turbinesmore efficiently and producing more energy from the available water.With the tremendous development of desktop computers, their prices are nowvery low. Many manufacturers supply standardised data acquisition systems. Newand cheap peripheral equipment, such as hard disks, PCMCIA cards for portablecomputers, the "watch-dogs- to monitor and replace control equipment in theevent of failure is available and is easy to integrate at low price.The new programming techniques Visual Basic, Delphi etc- assist the writing ofsoftware using well-established routines; the GUI interfaces, that every body knowsthanks to the Windows applications; everything has contributed to erase the oldaura of mystery that surrounded the automatic control applications.6.7 Ancillary electrical equipment6.7.1 Plant service transformerElectrical consumption including lighting and station mechanical auxiliariesmay require from 1 to 3 percent of the plant capacity; the higher percentageapplies to micro hydro (less than 500 kW). The service transformer must bedesigned to take these intermittent loads into account. If possible, twoalternative supplies, with automatic changeover, should be used to ensureservice in an unattended plant.6.7.2 DC control power supplyPlants larger than 500 kW capacity, especially if they are remotely controlled,require a DC system with a battery charger, station batteries and a DC distributionpanel. The ampere-hour capacity must be such that, on loss of charging current,full control is ensured for as long as it may be required to take corrective action.6.7.3 Headwater and tailwater recordersIn a hydro plant provisions should be made to record both the headwater andtailwater. The simplest way is to fix securely in the stream a board marked withmeters and centimetres in the style of a levelling staff but someone must physicallyobserve and record the measurements. In powerhouses provided with automaticcontrol the best solution is to use transducers connected to the computer via thedata acquisition equipment14.196 Layman`s GuidebookNowadays measuring units a sensor records the measurement variable andconverts it into a signal that is transmitted to the processing unit. The measurementsensor must always be installed at the measurement site, where the level has tobe measured - usually subject to rough environmental conditions and of difficultaccess - whereas the processing unit is usually separated and placed in a wellprotected environment easily accessible for operation and service.There is a wide range of sensors each one using a variety of measuring principles.It must be realised that a level measurement cannot determine the level for theforebay, unless the measurement site had been selected in such a way that itrepresents the whole forebay. According to the Bernoulli principle, a change in theflow rate always causes a change in the height of the water level. If the measurementsite is located in the inflow or outflow structures, the measurement will give falsePhoto 6.11197 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentresults. The level sensor can transmit the signal by using the hydrostatic method(figure 6.39 a) or the pneumatic (bubble) method (figure 6.39 b). In the first methodcare should be taken so all the tubes for pressure transmission are dimensionedand laid in such way that cannot be obstructed and no air can accumulate withinthem 17. In the second, the sensor orifice is located lower than the correspondinglevel at the start of the measurement, and that no water can penetrate and collectin the lines. In the solution shown in figure 6.39 a) floating material can damagethe instrument. The best solution is the concealed assembly of all parts togetherwithin the wall as shown in figure 6.39 b) and c).6.7.4 Outdoor substationThe so-called water-to-wire system usually includes the substation. A line breakermust separate the plant including the step-up transformer from the grid in case offaults in the power plant. PTs and CTs for kWh and kW metering are normallymounted at the substation, at the connecting link between the plant-out conductorsand the take-off line to the grid (Photo 6.10). In areas with very high environmentalsensitivity the substation is enclosed in the powerhouse, and the transmissioncables, leave it along the penstock.Lightning arrestors for protection against line surges or lightning strikes are usuallymounted in the substation structure.6.8 ExamplesTwo examples will help to better understand the concepts exposed in this chapterand particularly the use of the specific speed tool.ExampIe 6.1SeIect a turbine to equip a 200-m head scheme with a nominaI fIow of 1.5m3/sec. The powerhouse is Iocated at an aItitude of 1000 m over the seaIeveI.Assuming an overall efficiency at the design point of 85% the installed powerwill be: P = QHgh = 1.5 x 200 x 9.81 x 0.85 = 2500 kWAccording to figure 6.26 the plot of head and flow falls into the envelopes of aFrancis and a Pelton turbine. The turbine speed is given as a function of ns by:n n ns = =2500200 0 06655 4 / .If we select a Pelton with a rotational speed of 375 rpm, to be coupled via aspeed increaser with a ratio 2/1 to a 750-rpm generator, its specific speed willbe 24.93, inside, although at the limit, of the Pelton's specific speed range.The jet velocity would beJ gH mf = = = 0 97 2 0 97 2 9 81 200 60 76 . . . . / sec198 Layman`s GuidebookThe tangential speed; V0 = 0.47Vj = 28.56 m/secThe Pelton diameter according to (6.8)D Jn m = =

=60 60 2856375 1450

.. a wheel of a reasonable diameterIf we select a Francis to be directly coupled to a generator running at 1500 rpm,ns = 99.75From the curves of figure 6.16 V0e=0.69 and the inlet diameter will beD0 60 0 69 2 9 81 2001500 0572 =

= . . . / m3Using the similarity equations computed in 6.1.5 which can be applied becausethe diameter remains always constant. So:199 Chapter 6. Electromechanical equipmentn n HHQ Q HHP P nn2 1 22 1 22 1 2313331 750 100120 6851 0 944 100120 08621000 685750 762= = == = == = =rpmm / seckW3. .200 Layman`s GuidebookBibliography1 P.T. Than Hline & P.Wibulswas,Feasibility of using small centrifugal pumps asturbines. Renewable Energy Review Journal; Vol 9, No.1 June 19872 Societ Hydrotechnique de France, "Design, Construction, Commissioningand Operation Guide, May 19853Schweiger & Gregory, "Developments in the design of water turbines, WaterPower & Dam Construction, May 19893 F. de Siervo & A. Lugaresi, "Modern trends in selecting and designing Francisturbines, Water Power & Dam Construction, August 19764 H.Giraud & M.Beslin, "Optimisation d'avant-project d'une usine de basse chute,Symposium A.I.R.H. 1968, Laussane5 L. Austerre & J.de Verdehan, "Evolution du poid et du prix des turbines enfonction des progrs techniques, Compte rendu des cinquimes journes del'hydraulique, 1958, La Houille Blanche6 T.Belhaj, "Optimisation d'avant-project d'une centrale hydrolectrique au fil del'eau Symposium Maroc/CEE Marrackech 19897 Pe Than Line & P.Wibulswas, "The feasibility of using small centrifugal pumpsas turbines, Renewable Energy Review Journal, Vol 9, N.1, June 19878 R. Hothersall, "Turbine selection under 1 MW. Cross-flow or conventionalturbine? Hydro Review, February 19879 Gordon "A new approach to turbine speed, Water Power & Dam Construction, August 199010 Seldon and Logan, "Variable speed pump/turbines, Hydro Review, August198911 J.Cross & J.Burnet,The development and use of an integrated databasesystemfor management and performance analysis of multiple automated hydroelectricsites, Third International Conference on Small Hydro, Cancun, Mexico 1988.12 J.L.Gordon "Powerhouse concrete quantity estimates, Canadian Journal OfCivil Engineering, June 1983.7.0 IntroductionFollowing the recommendations of the United Nations Conference in Rio on Envi-ronment and Development, the European Union committed itself to stabilising itscarbon dioxide (CO2) emissions, primarily responsible for the greenhouse effect, at1990 levels by the year 2000. Clearly Europe will not be able to achieve this ambi-tious target without a major increase in the development of renewable energy sources.Renewable energy can make a significant contribution to CO2 emissions reduc-tion. The European Commission, through the ALTENER programme, proposedas indicative objectives by 2005 to increase the contribution of renewable energysources from its current level of 4% in 1991 to 8% of primary energy consump-tion and to duplicate the electricity produced by renewable sources. For smallhydropower this objective will require the European Union to increase the aver-age annual renewable electricity production from 30 TWh to 60 TWh., and thedevelopment of 9 000 MW in new schemes. The achievement of this objectivewill imply an annual reduction of 180 million tonnes of CO2 emissions.However under present trends the above objective will not be attained so long asthe administrative procedures to authorise the use of water are not accelerated.Hundreds, if not thousands, of authorisation requests are pending approval, thedelay being caused mainly by supposed conflict with the environment. Some envi-ronmental agencies seem to justify or at least excuse- this blockade on the groundsof the low capacity of the small plants. Something is basically wrong when, to attainthe ALTENER objectives contemplated, in small hydro alone, the duplication of thealready existing 9 000 MW (the equivalent to nine last generation nuclear plants)will be required. It seems to be forgotten that by definition renewable energies aredecentralised, and that for the time being only small hydro power plants and thewind turbines can significantly contribute to renewable electricity production.At the same time it should be accepted that, although through having no emis-sions of carbon dioxide and other pollutants, electricity production in small hydroplants is environmentally rewarding, the fact is that due to their location in sensi-tive areas, local impacts are not always negligible. The significant global advan-tages of small hydropower must not prevent the identification of burdens andimpacts at local level nor the taking of necessary mitigation actions.On the other hand because of their economic relevance, thermal plants areauthorised at very high administrative levels, although some of their impacts can-not be mitigated at present. A small hydropower scheme producing impacts thatalmost always can be mitigated is considered at lower administrative levels, wherethe influence of pressure groups angling associations, ecologists, etc. is greater.It is not difficult to identify the impacts, but to decide which mitigation measuresshould be undertaken it is not easy, because these are usually dictated by subjec-tive arguments. It is therefore strongly recommended to establish a permanentdialogue with the environmental authorities as a very first step in the design phase.Even if this negotiation must be considered on a project by project basis it wouldbe convenient to provide a few guidelines that will help the designer to proposemitigating measures that can easily be agreed with the licensing authorities.7. Environmental impact and its mitigation202 Layman`s Guidebook7.1 Burdens and impacts identificationImpacts of hydropower schemes are highly location and technology specific. A highmountain diversion scheme, being situated in a highly sensitive area is more likelyto generate impact that an integral low-head scheme in a valley. The upgrading andextension of existing facilities, which will be given priority in Europe, generates im-pacts that are quite different from an entirely new scheme. Diversion projects inmountains use the large change in elevation of a river as it flows downstream. Thetailwater from the power plant then reenters the river, and entire areas of the rivermay be bypassed by a large volume of water, when the plant is in operation.Given below is an exhaustive description of possible impacts, based on Europeanstudies1 dealing with externalities, and made by groups of experts that performEnvironmental Impact Assessments. However is not certain that all or most of thislist of descriptions will be applicable to a specific project. In the list are identified theevent, persons or things affected, impact and priority at local and national levels.Event Persons or Impact Prioritythings affectedEIectricity generationDuring constructionRoad constructionand road traffic general public noise lowaccidents lowemissions lowwildlife noise disturbance lowcollision's accidents mediumforest better access mediumfuture production loss mediumAccidents workers minor injuries mediummajor injuries highdeath highJobs created general public locally highnational mediumIn operationFlow alteration Fish loss of habitat highPlants loss of habitat mediumBirds loss of habitat mediumWildlife loss of habitat mediumWater quality contaminant dilution lowGeneral public loss of waterfalls highloss of recrea-tional activities: mediumAesthetic effects mediumExcessive noise workers 0n health mediumgeneral public on health mediumDams and damning Agriculture loss of grazing area highForestry loss future production high203 Chapter 7. Environmental impactEvent Persons or Impact Prioritythings affectedAquatic ecosystem change of habitat highGeneral public local clime change negligibleglobal clime changeby methane not provenWater quality eutrophication lowCultural andarcheologic. effects loss of objects highEIectricity TransmissionOn the constructionAccidents workers minor injuries mediumworkers major injuries highworkers death highJobs created andincreased income General public local and nationalemployment benefits highOn the operationPhysical presence Forestry lost future production lowGeneral public visual intrusion mediumBirds injury, death mediumElectromagnetic fields General public cancersnonexistentAccidents General public major injuries negligibleDeath negligibleAccidents onmaintenance oftransmission lines Workers Minor injuries negligibleMajor injuries negligibleDeath negligibleJobs created andincreased local income General public local and nationalemployment benefits medium7.2 Impacts in the construction phaseSchemes of the diversion type, those using a multipurpose reservoir, and thoseinserted on an irrigation canal or in a water supply system produce very differentimpacts from one another, both from a quantitative and qualitative viewpoint. Theschemes making use of a multipurpose dam practically do not generate unfavourableimpacts, since it is understood that when the dam was built the necessary mitigatingmeasures were already incorporated, and in any case the addition of a powerhouselocated in its base shall not alter the ecological system. Schemes integrated in anirrigation canal or in a water supply pipe system will not introduce new impacts overthose generated when the canal and the pipe system were developed. On the otherhand, diversion schemes present very particular aspects that need to be analysed.204 Layman`s Guidebook7.2.1 ReservoirsThe impacts generated by the construction of a dam and the creation of the ad-joining reservoir include, in addition to the loss of ground, the construction andopening of construction roads, working platforms, excavation works, blasting andeven depending of the dam size- concrete manufacturing plants. Other non-negligible impacts are the barrier effect and the alteration of flow consequent to ariver regulation that did not exist before.Otherwise the impacts generated by the construction of a dam do not differ fromthose induced by a large scale infrastructure, whose effects and mitigating mea-sures are well known.7.2.2 Water intakes, open canals, penstocks, tailraces, etc.The impacts generated by the construction of these structures are well known andhave been described in table 7.1: e.g. noise affecting the life of the animals; dangerof erosion due to the loss of vegetation consequent to the excavation work andaffecting the turbidity of the water; downstream sediment deposition, etc. To miti-gate such impacts it is strongly recommended that the excavation work should beundertaken in the dry season and the disturbed ground restored as soon as pos-sible. In any case these impacts are always transitory and do not constitute a seri-ous obstacle to the administrative authorisation procedure.In view of its protective role against riverine erosion is wise to restore and rein-force the river bank vegetation, that may have been damaged during construc-tion of the hydraulic structures. It should be noted that the ground should berevegetated with indigenous species, better adapted to the local conditions.The impact assessment study should take count of the effects of jettisoning exca-vated material in the stream, and the unfavourable consequences of a men livingduring the construction period in an area usually uninhabited. This impact whichmay be negative if the scheme is located in a natural park, would be positive in anon-sensitive area by increasing the level of its activity. Vehicle emissions, exca-vation dust, the high noise level and other minor burdens contribute to damagethe environment, when the scheme is located in sensitive areas. To mitigate theabove impacts the traffic operation must be carefully planned to eliminate unnec-essary movements and to keep all traffic to a minimum.On the positive side it should be noted that the increase in the level of activity inan area usually economically depressed, by using local manpower and smalllocal subcontractors during the construction phase is to be welcomed.205 Chapter 7. Environmental impact7.3 Impacts arising from the operation of the scheme7.3.1 Sonic impactsThe allowable level of noise depends on the local population or on isolated housesnear to the powerhouse. The noise comes mainly from the turbines and, whenused, from the speed increasers. Nowadays noise inside the powerhouse canbe reduced, if necessary, to levels of the order of 70 dBA and to be almostimperceptible outside.Concerning sonic impact the Fiskeby2 power plant in Norrkping, Sweden, is anexample to be followed. The scheme owner wanted a maximum internal soundlevel of 80 dBA inside the powerhouse at full operation. The maximum allowedexternal sound level, at night, was set at 40 dBA in the surroundings of somehouses located about 100 metres away.To reach these levels of noise it was decided that all the components turbines,speed increasers, asynchronous generators- were bought in one package from onewell-known supplier. The purchase contract specified the level of noise to be at-tained in full operation leaving the necessary measures to fulfil the demands to themanufacturer. The supplier adopted the following measures: very small tolerancesin the gear manufacturing; sound insulating blankets over the turbine casing; watercooling instead of air cooling of the generator and a careful design of ancillary com-ponents. As well as the usual thermal insulation, the building was provided withacoustic insulation. As a consequence the attained level of noise varied between 66dBA and 74 dBA, some 20 dBA lower than the average Swedish powerhouses.Having a single supplier, the issue of responsibility was eliminated .The external noise level reduction was obtained by vibration insulation of the pow-erhouse walls and roof. The principle for the vibration reduction system was to letthe base slab, concrete waterways and pillars for the overhead crane be excited byvibration from the turbine units. The other parts of the building such as supportingconcrete roof beams and precast concrete elements in the walls were supported byspecial rubber elements designed with spring constants giving maximum noise re-duction. For the roof beams special composite spring-rubber supporting bearings(Trelleborg Novimbra SA W300) were chosen. A similar solution was chosen for theprecast wall components. Once built, the sound emission from the powerhousecould not be detected from the other noise sources as traffic, sound from the waterin the stream, etc. at the closest domestic buildingThe underground powerhouse of Cavaticcio3, located about 200 m from the Pi-azza Maggiore, the historical heart of Bologna, has also merits in this respect. Anacoustic impact study undertaken on Italian schemes showed an average inter-nal level of about 85-dbA . The level of noise in the vicinity of the houses near theproposed powerhouse was 69 dbA by day and 50 dbA by night. The regulationsin force required that these values could not increase by more than 5 dbA duringthe day and 3 dbA during the night. The measures carried out to fulfil the require-ments were similar to those undertaken in Fiskeby: Insulation of the machine hall, the most noisy room, from the adjacent rooms bymeans of double walls with different mass, with a layer of glass wool in between.206 Layman`s Guidebook Soundproofing doors Floors floating on 15 mm thick glass wool carpets False ceiling with noise deadening characteristics Heavy trapdoors to the ground floor, fitted with soundproof counter trapdoorsand neoprene sealing gaskets. Vibration damping joints between fans and ventilation ducts Low air velocity (4 m/sec) ducts Two silencers at the top and rear of the ventilation plant Inlet and outlet stacks equipped with noise traps Air ducts built with a material in sandwich (concrete, glass wool, perforatedbricks and plaster) Turbine rotating components dynamic balanced Water-cooled brushless synchronous generator Precision manufactured gears in the speed increaser Turbine casings and speed increaser casings strongly stiffened to avoid reso-nance and vibrations Anchoring of the turbine by special anti-shrinking concrete to ensure the mono-lithic condition between hydro unit and foundation block Turbine ballasting with large masses of concrete to reduce to a minimum thevibration's amplitudeThe underground ventilation has three main purposes: dehumidification of therooms to ensure a correct operation and maintenance of the equipment, fresh airsupply for the workers, removal of the heat generated by the various plant com-ponents. Even with the maximum air volume circulation estimated at 7000 m3/hour the air velocity in the air ducts never exceeds 4 m/sec.It is true that the two above examples are very particular ones but they are includedhere to show that everything is possible if it is considered necessary and the projectprofitability admits a significant increase of the investment. It is also true that bothexamples concern low head schemes implying the use of speed increasers; a highmountain diversion scheme would permit the direct coupling of turbine and genera-tor, so eliminating the component responsible for most of the vibrations.7.3.2 Landscape impactThe quality of visual aspects is important to the public, who are increasingly reluc-tant to accept changes taking place in their visual environment. A new condominiumin our neighborhood, an artificial beach built with sand coming from a submarine bed- such things are rejected by a part of the population, even if, in many ways theyimprove the environment including landscaping. The problem is particularly acute inthe high mountain hydropower schemes or in schemes located in an urban area withremarkable historical character. This concern is frequently manifested in the form ofpublic comments and even of legal challenges to those developers seeking to changea well-loved landscape by developing a hydropower facility.Each of the components that comprise a hydro scheme - powerhouse, weir, spill-way, penstock, intake, tailrace, substation and transmission lines - has potentialto create a change in the visual impact of the site by introducing contrastingforms, lines, colour or textures. The design, location, and appearance of any onefeature may well determine the level of public acceptance for the entire scheme.207 Chapter 7. Environmental impactMost of these components, even the largest, may be screened from view throughthe use of landform and vegetation. Painted in non-contrasting colours and tex-tures to obtain non-reflecting surfaces a component will blend with or comple-ment the characteristic landscape. An effort of creativity, usually with small effecton the total budget, can often result in a project acceptable to all parties con-cerned: local communities, national and regional agencies, ecologists etc.The penstock is usually the main cause of "nuisance. Its layout must be carefullystudied using every natural feature - rocks, ground, vegetation - to shroud it and ifthere is no other solution, painting it so as to minimise contrast with the background.If the penstock can be buried, this is usually the best solution. Expansion joints andconcrete anchor blocks can then be reduced or eliminated; the ground is returned toits original state and the pipe does not form a barrier to the passage of wild life.The powerhouse, with the intake, the penstock tailrace and transmission lines mustbe skilfully inserted into the landscape. Any mitigation strategies should be incorporat-ed in the project, usually without too much extra cost to facilitate permit approval.The examination of two schemes carefully designed to shroud their components willconvey to potential designers a handful of ideas that should help to convince the envi-ronmental authorities that there is no place so environmentally sensitive as to preventthe development of a energy conversion process, so harmless and acceptable. TheCordianes scheme in Picos de Europa (Spain) and the scheme on the river Neckar,located in the historical centre of Heidelberg (Germany) are considered below.Cordianes schemeA small reservoir such as the one existing in Cordianes (Photo 7.1) has some posi-tive aspects. The existence of an almost stable level of water, and the tourist attrac-tions (swimming, fishing, canoeing, etc.) that it provides counter balance its negativeeffects.Figure 7.1 shows a schematic view of the Cordianes scheme. The weir is a rela-tively airy concrete structure, but being 14 m high it is the most obtrusive compo-Photo 7.1208 Layman`s Guidebooknent in the scheme (Photo 7.2). It needs to be so high because the water mustreach the level of an old tunnel that, once rebuilt, makes part of the diversion canal.That is precisely the reason why the water level in the reservoir cannot vary by morethan two metres and confers to the pond the character of a picturesque lake.And while speaking of dams the Vilhelmina dam in Sweden, constructed of soilmaterials with an impervious core, should be mentioned (Photo 7.3). The surfaceof the crest and the downstream slope are protected against erosion by layers oflarge stones and boulders, which are embedded in reinforced concrete up to halfPhoto 7.2Photo 7.3209 Chapter 7. Environmental impacttheir height. The downstream slope has a normal inclination of 1:3 except for apart, 40 m wide, where the inclination is 1:10. This design makes it possible forfish to pass the dam up the river. This dam has another environmental advantagesince even with a small discharge it has the appearance of a natural rapid.An open canal built in reinforced concrete leads, from the integral intake (Photo7.4)leaves, with a section of 2 x 2.5 m and a length of 1335 m, entirely buried andcovered by a layer of revegetated terrain. Photographs 7.5, 7.6 and 7.7 show astretch of the canal in its three construction phases: land excavation reinforcedconcrete canal and finished canal with the recovered vegetal layer. The presencePhoto 7.4210 Layman`s Guidebookin the photographs of an electrical pylon the transmission line between thevillages of Posada de Valdeon and Cordianes - confirms that it is the same site,because otherwise it could be impossible to identify the buried canal.Photos 7.8 and 7.9 show how the entrance to the tunnel has been shrouded. In thefirst one the tunnel being rebuilt can be seen; in the second the canal connectingwith the tunnel has been covered, as has the rest of the canal, and the entrance tothe tunnel made invisible. It is possible to enter the tunnel through the canal forinspection, after it is dewatered. In fact the tunnel already existed but was unfin-ished due to the lack of means to cross the colluvium terrain. It has now been rebuiltPhoto 7. 5Photo 7.6211 Chapter 7. Environmental impactwith a wet section of 2 x 1.80 m and with a 1:1000 slope which conducts the waterdown to forebay, a perfect match with the surrounding rocks, and provided with asemicircular spillway. From the forebay a steel penstock, 1.40 m diameter and 650m long, brings the water to the turbines. In its first 110 m the pipe has a slope closeto 60, in a 2.5 x 2 m trench excavated in the rock. The trench was filled with colouredconcrete to match the surrounding rocks. A trench excavated in the soil, concealsthe other 540 m which were covered by a vegetal layer later on.Few metres before arriving at the powerhouse the pipe bifurcates into two smallerpipes that feed two Francis turbines of 5000 kW installed power each. The power-Photo 7.8Photo 7.7212 Layman`s Guidebookhouse (Photographs 7.10) is similar to the houses dotting the mountain. Its limestonewalls, its roof made of old tiles and its heavy wood windows don't show its industrialpurpose. In addition the powerhouse is buried for two thirds of its height improving itsappearance. To conceal the stone work of the tailrace a waterfall has been installed.The substation is located in the powerhouse (Photo 7.11), in contrast with theusual outer substation (see photo 6.11), and the power cables leave the power-house over the penstock, under the tunnel and over the open canal. Close to thevillage where there are several transmission lines the power cables come to thesurface, to be buried again when the line transverses the north slope, a habitat ofa very rare bird species the "urogayo.Photo 7.9Photo 7.10213 Chapter 7. Environmental impactThe Neckar power pIant (Photo 7.12) is located in the historical centre of Heidel-berg4 and was authorised under the condition that it would not interfere with theview of the dam built in the past to make the river navigable. The powerhouse,built upstream of the dam, is entirely buried and cannot be seen from the riverbank. Photo 7.13 shows better than a thousand words the conceptual design,where stand two Kaplan pit turbines, and each one with a capacity of 1535 kW.The investment cost was of course very high about 3760 ECU/installed kW.Photo 7.12Photo 7.11214 Layman`s Guidebook7.3.3 Biological impacts7.3.3.1 In the reservoirReservoir projects are very unusual in small hydropower although there are someschemes that store enough water to operate the turbine only during the periodsof maximum electrical demand. Such operation is referred to as "peaking or"peak-lopping. In integral low head schemes peaking can result in unsatisfactoryconditions for fish downstream because the flow decreases when the generationis reduced. The lower flow can result in stranding newly deposited fish eggs inspawning areas. The eggs1 apparently can survive periods of dewatering greaterthan those occurring in normal peaking operation but small fish can be strandedparticularly if the level fall is rapid.7.3.3.2 In the streambedA substantial proportion of small hydro plants is of the diversion type, where wa-ter is diverted from a stream, or a lake, into a hydroelectric plant perhaps kilometresfrom the diversion point to take advantage of the gain in head. The reduction inflow in the streambed between the point of diversion and the tailrace downstreamof the powerhouse may affect spawning, incubation, rearing, and the passage ofanadromous fish and of living space for adult fish. Then in high-flow periods thewater spills over the weir and floods the streambed. It is precisely such frequentchanges from semi-dry to wet that can ruin aquatic life.There is here a clear conflict of interest. The developer will maintain that thegeneration of electricity with renewable resources is a very valuable contributionto mankind, by replacing other conversion processes emitting greenhouse gases.The environmentalists will say, on the contrary, that the water diversion in thestream represents a violation of the public domain.7.3.3.2.1 Reserved flowIn many countries reserved flow is regulated by a national law that usually onlydefines a minimum value, but still permits local communities to impose flow val-ues unreasonably higher. The determination of reserved flow can be critical forthe development of a site because too large a residual flow can make an other-wise good project economically unfeasible.All the dominant methodologies for the determination of the reserved flow, inforce in Europe and U.S.A., can be classified in two groups:Photo 7.13215 Chapter 7. Environmental impact Hydrological methods based on an analysis of the historic time-series and sub-sumed in easily applicable empirical formulae. Hydro-biologic methods based on scientific criteria, applicable only to a particu-lar river, and taking into account both hydrologic and biologic parameters.In the first group there are, worthy of mention - Those using a certain percentile (10%, 15%, etc.) of the "module or long termaverage flow. Those using the Matthey formula (based on the Q347 and Q330 representing theflows equalled or exceeded respectively 347 and 330 days in a year). Thiscriterion inspires the Swiss and Austrian legislation and is applied with smallmodifications in the regional governments of Asturias and Navarra in Spain. The Tenant method (1976) developed for the Montana, Wyoming and Nebraskarivers in the U.S.A., proposing minimum flows corresponding to different per-centiles of the module, variable with the season of the year.In the second group there are - The method of the habitat analysis The method of the wetted perimeter (Randolph and White 1984) The incremental analysis The method of microhabitats by Bovee and Milhous 1978 and Stainaker 1980 The method of Nehring, that together with the last two ones are considered asthe harbingers of the PHASBIM methodology The MDDDR and DRB based on the research work of Cacas, Dumont andSouchon (CEMAGREF) in France. They have been largely demonstrated inthe French Alps The DGB method developed by HydroM 5(Toulouse 1989) The APU method developed in Spain by Garcia de Jalon and othersThe hydrologic methods are simple and user friendly, but are not supported by ascientific criterion and are consequently arbitrary.A large majority of the hydro-biologic methodologies are based in the knowledgeof the physical structure of the river. For the past two decades the state-of-the-artmodel for the depiction of the riverine habitat has been the Physical Habitat Simu-lation Model (PHABSIM), based on one-dimensional hydraulic modelling and re-quiring an abundance of empirical calibration data and the collection of thesedata along transects of the river. PHABSIM is expensive and often non-transfer-able to other streamsFor the time being the legislation on a large majority of the E.U. member states isbased in hydrologic methodologies, and defines the reserved flow as a percentageof the "module. In France the Law 84-512 (Loi du Pche, 29-06-84) requires, inwatercourses with a long-term average flow under 80 m3/sec, 10% of the module.Watercourses with a long-term annual average flow over 80 m3/sec require 5% ofthe module (Art 232.6 du Code Rural). Those values are a minimum to be re-spected by the local authorities which can require higher values. In Germany thereare the Lnder authorities which are responsible for the definition of the reservedflow. In Nordhein-Westfallen for instance it can vary from 0.2 to 0.5 of the module,and in Rheinland-Platz 1% of the module, but in the west of the country where mostof the rivers have salmon higher values are required (usually the discharge corre-216 Layman`s Guidebooksponding to a 30% excedance or Q110). In Italy there is no national norm and thereare the regions, which specify the required values. In Regione Piedmont it must be10% of the instantaneous discharge and the turbines should be stopped when theriver flow drop below 120 l/sec in the Anza river, 5 l/s in the Rosso, and 30 l/s in theOllochia (Bolletino Ufficiale della Regione Piedmont 20/5/1987). In Portugal the flowvalue, based on the hydrologic and biologic characteristics of the river, is defined bythe INAG in the authorisation act. In Austria the norm is based on the Q347, the flowthat is equalled or exceeded 347 days a year. In Spain the Water Act (Ley de Aguas,02-08-1988) requires a minimum equivalent to the average summer flow but notless than 2 l/s per square kilometre of catchment area, but the required value varieswith the regional government. In Navarra it is 10% of the module for the rivers withcyprinids but in the salmon rivers is equivalent to the Q330 and in Asturias it follows arather complicated formula.Once the reserved flow is defined, the hydraulic devices ensuring the achieve-ment of this target must be implemented. In France, for instance, a recent inves-tigation undertaken in the Southern Alps found that in 36 of the 43 schemesinvestigated, the reserved flow was not respected (in half of the schemes due tothe poor quality of the implemented devices). Accordingly it is strongly recom-mended to take care of this aspect.It must be underlined that if any of the biologic methods for the definition of thereserved flow value is implemented, there is a possibility for the developer todecrease the level of the required reserved flow, by modifying the physical struc-ture of the streambed. Actually growing trees on the riverbanks to provide shad-owed areas, deposit gravel in the streambed to improve the substratum, rein-force the riverside shrubs to fight erosion, etc.Figure 7.2 (reproduced from a paper by Dr. Martin Mayo) illustrates the kind ofcoverage and refuge against the flow and sunshine or to elude a danger, fur-nished to vertebrates and invertebrates by both natural and artificial elements.The existence of caves and submerged cornices provides a safe refuge againstthe attacks of a predator. Also the riverine vegetation, which when close to thewater provides shadow coverage used by fish of any size to prevent overheatingor to provide concealment in face of terrestrial predators (it must be said that themost dangerous terrestrial predator is the freshwater fisherman). All these ele-ments contribute to the concept that in the APU method is known as refuge coef-ficient. By increasing its importance the required value of the reserved flow maybe diminished. In that way a better protection of the aquatic fauna can be com-bined with a higher energy production.7.3.3.2.2 Fish passes (upstream fish)Anadromous fish, which spawn in fresh water but spend most of their lives in theocean, and catadromous fish, which spawn in the ocean and reach adulthood infresh water requires passages at dams and weirs. A great variety of fishpassdesigns2 are available, depending on the species of fish involved. Otherwise fresh-water fish seem to have restricted movements.Upstream passage technologies are considered well developed and understoodfor certain anadromous species including salmon. According to OTA 1995 (Office217Chapter

7.

Environmental

impact218 Layman`s GuidebookPhoto 7.14of Technology Assessment in the U.S.A.) there is no single solution for designingupstream fish passageways. Effective fish passage design for a specific site re-quires good communication between engineers and biologists and thorough un-derstanding of site characteristics. Upstream passage failure tends to result froma lack of adequate attention to operation and maintenance of facilities.The upstream passage can be provided for through several means: fish ladders, lifts(elevators or locks), pumps and transportation operations. Pumps are a very contro-versial method. Transportation is used together with high dams, something ratherunusual in small hydropower schemes. Site and species-specific criteria and eco-nomics would determine which method is most appropriate.Fish ladders (pool and weir, Denil, vertical slots, hybrid etc.) can be designed toaccommodate fish that are bottom swimmers, surface swimmers or orifice swim-mers. But not all kinds of fish will use ladders. Fish elevators and locks are favouredfor fish that does not use ladders219 Chapter 7. Environmental impactThe commonest fishpass is the weir and pooI fishway, a series of pools with waterflowing from pool to pool over rectangular weirs. The pools then play a double role:provide rest areas and dissipate the energy of the water descending through theladder. The size and height of the pools must be designed as a function of the fish tobe handled. The pools can be supported by: Baffles provided with slots, so that both fish and bedload, pass through them Baffles provided with bottom orifices large enough to allow fish to pass Baffles provided both with vertical slots and bottom orificesPhoto 7.15220 Layman`s GuidebookPools separated by baffles with bottom orifices only do not have practical interestbecause are limited to bottom orifice fish swimmers. Salmon do not need thembecause they can jump over the baffle itself, and shads, for instance, are not bottomswimmers. The system of rectangular weirs (figure 7.3) is the oldest one, but pre-sents the inconvenience that when the headwater fluctuates the fishway flow in-creases or decreases, resulting in a fishway with too much or too little flow. More-over this type of ladder will not pass bedload readily and must be designed withbottom orifices for this purpose. Photo 7.14 shows one of these ladders with a rusticconstruction designed for salmon checking on a river in Asturias (Spain).Photo 7.15 illustrates a fishladder with vertical slots and bottom orifices that usuallyyields very good results. The shape and disposition of the baffles are shown inperspective in the figure 7.4; the width of the pools, for lengths varying between 1.8and 3.0 m, varies from 1.2 m to 2.4 m . The drop between pools is in the order of 25 40 cm. Shads require a drop not bigger than 25 cm. TComputer programs6 optimisethe width and length of pools, the drop between pools and the hydraulic load.The vertical slotted fishway (figure 7.5) is very popular in the U.S.A. but not wellknown in Europe7. Through the baffle's vertical slot passes both fishes and bedload.A standard model has pools 2.5-m wide, 3.3 m long with a slot 30 cm wide. Support-ers of this type of ladder praise its hydraulic stability even with large flow variations.221 Chapter 7. Environmental impactPhoto 7.16The Denil fishpass (Photo 7.16) consists of fairly steep, narrow chutes with vanes inthe bottom and sides as illustrated in figure 7.6. These vanes dissipate the energyproviding a low-velocity flow through which the fish can easily ascend. This charac-teristic allows Denils to be used with slopes up to 1:5. They also produce a turbulentdischarge that is more attractive to many fish species than the discharge from pool-222 Layman`s Guidebooktype fishpasses, and are tolerant of varying water depths. The ladder must be pro-vided with resting areas after approximately 2-m. gain of elevation.The Borland lock (figure 7.7) is a relatively cheap solution totransfer fish from the tailrace to the forebay in a mediumdam. The fish climb a short fish ladder to the bottom cham-ber. Then the entrance to the bottom chamber is closed andthe shaft rising from it to the top of the dam becomes filledwith the water flowing down from the forebay through thetop chamber. Once filled, the fish that are attracted by thisflow are close to the forebay level into which they can swim.In higher dams the best solution is to install a lift specificallydesigned for this purpose. EDF in France has a wide experi-ence with these lifts. The Golfech lift for instance when it wascommissioned in 1989 made it possible to pass twenty tonnesof shad (about 66 000 individuals) that were blocked at thebase of the dam. Otherwise, the only possible solution is totrap the fish at the base and transport them safely upstream.These devices are discussed in reference 4. All that is neededis a small fishpass to bring the fish from the tailrace to thetrap. There, by mechanical means the fish are concentratedin a trolley hopper, and loaded onto a truck. Eventually thetrolley hopper carries them directly over the dam's crest via acableway and they are discharged into the reservoir.The most important element of a fishpassage system, and themost difficult to design for maximum effectiveness, is the fish-attraction facility. The fish-attraction facility brings fish into thelower end of the fishpassage 3 and should be designed to takeadvantage of the tendency of migrating fish to search for strongcurrents but avoid them if they are too strong. The flow must223 Chapter 7. Environmental impacttherefore be strong enough to attract fish away from spillways and tail-races. The flow velocities at the entrance of the fishpass vary with thetype of fish being passed, but for salmon and trout, velocities from twoto three meters per second are acceptable. A lack of good attractionflow can result on delays in migration, as fish become confused, millingaround looking for the entrance. If necessary, water must be pumpedinto the fishpass from the tailwater areas, but usually enough watercan be taken at the upstream intake or forebay to be directed down thefishpass. Dealing with salmon the attraction flow should be maintainedbetween 1 m/s and 2 m/s, although if the water is too cold less than8- or too hot more than 22- the speed must be decreased becausefish become lazy and do not jump. Water can be injected just at theentrance of the fishway avoiding the need to transverse all its length(figure 7.8)The entrance to the fishpassage should be located close to the weirsince salmon tend to look for the entrance by going around theobstacle. In low-head integrated schemes the entrance should bein the bank close to the powerhouse as illustrated schematically infigure 7.9 and shown in photo 7.17.The upstream outlet of the fishpassage should not be located in anarea close to the spillway, where there is a danger of being sentback to the base of the dam, nor in an area of dead circulatingwaters where the fish can get trapped. Fishpassages must be pro-tected from poachers, either closing it with wire mesh or covering itwith steel plates.The use of fish pumps for fish passage at dams is controversialand largely experimental. This technology is relied upon in aquac-Photo 7.17224 Layman`s Guidebookulture for moving live fish. Several pumps are in the market and new ones arebeing developed. Pumping of the fish can lead to injury and de-scaling as aresult of crowding in the bypass pipe.7.3.3.2.3 Fishpasses (downstream fish)In the past downstream migrating fish passed through the turbine. The fish-killassociated with this method varies from a few percent to more than 40% de-pending on the turbine design and more specifically on the peripheral speed ofthe runner. In a Francis turbine increasing the peripheral runner speed from 12m/sec to 30 m/sec increases the percentage mortality from 5% to 35%. Francisturbines, due to their construction characteristics cause greater mortality thanKaplan turbines. Bulb turbines reduce mortality to less than 5%8.Apparently head is not a decisive factor. A turbine working at a head of 12 metersproduces the same mortality as one working at a head of 120 m. The elevation ofthe runner above tailwater is a very important factor, quite apart from the effect ofcavitation. The more efficient a turbine is, the less mortality it produces. A turbineworking at rated capacity consequently causes less mortality than one working atpartial load. Mechanical injuries by collision against solid bodies - guide vanes orturbine blades-, exposure to subatmospheric pressures and shear effects produ-ced at the intersections of high velocity flows in opposite directions are the maincauses of mortality.PhysicaI barrier screens are often the only approved technology to protect fishfrom turbine intake channels, yet the screens are very expensive and difficult tomaintain. Factors to be considered in a diverting system include the approachvelocity to the screen (depending of the fish size the approach velocity shouldfluctuate around 1.4 m/s); adequate lateral flow to carry fish and debris past thescreen; and facilities for continuous or periodic cleaning of the screen to ensure225 Chapter 7. Environmental impactuniform velocity distribution through them. But the success of any screening sys-tem relies on means being provided to take fish from the screen to a safe haven.The simplest solution is a static standard screen -made of 2mm-punched steelsheet with 4-mm holes on 5.5-mm centres. Such a screen must be placed behindthe trash rack at the entrance to the penstock. Usually it is located at right angleswith the flow but, like this location is susceptible to clogging. It is better to inclineit to the flow, downsloping and ending in a trough so that fish slide in a smallquantity of water down the screen and into the trough, while most of the waterflow through the screen. There are also examples of upsloping and humpbackdesigns but the downslope is the most effective for self-cleaning. In some instal-lations a brush, driven by a cable and pulley mechanism and powered by a re-versible motor continuously clean the screen (figure 7.10). The screen can alsobe manufactured of stainless steel wire or with synthetic monofilament. The screenmade with synthetic monofilament is too flexible to be cleaned by mechanicalbrushes, but it can be cleaned by flow reversal.In the classic intake, with its longitudinal axis perpendicular to the river axis, it isrecommended to align the screen with the riverbank, so the fish follow the flowline without touching it (figure 7.11). If necessary the riverbanks will be gunited toavoid eddy formations where the fish could get trapped and even be attacked bypredators. Although this configuration does not seem to be favourable from ahydrodynamic viewpoint, the head loss generated by the change in direction ofthe flow is irrelevant. If the screen cannot be located at the entrance a bypass,such as the one illustrated by figure 7.12, should be implemented to send backthe fish to the river.For discharges over 3 m3/sec fixed screens, due to their large surface areas aredifficult to install. In those cases the use of vertical travelling screens or the rotaryhorizontal drum screens may be recommended . The travelling screens are me-chanically more complicated but need less space for their installation.A typical example of a screen not needing a mechanical cleaning mechanism isthe Eicher screen (figure 7.13). This design9 uses an upsloping elliptical screen ofwedge wire, perforate plate or other screening material, within a penstock, andoperates under pressure, so that most fish and trash tend to move along near the226 Layman`s Guidebooktop of the penstock, having little contact with the screen. A relatively high watervelocity moves both fish and trash through the penstock and out of a bypassparallel to the central flow in a few seconds. Full-scale tests of the Eicher FishScreen performed in 1990 showed the design to be 99% effective in bypassing227 Chapter 7. Environmental impactsalmon smolts without mortality 6. The Eicher screen does not require space inthe forebay area, and because it is installed inside the penstock, does not alterthe appearance of the installation.Another screen type tolerating higher approaching velocities is the Modular InclinedScreen (MIS) developed under the EPRI10 sponsorship. It is a modular design easyto adapt to any scheme, by adding the necessary number of modules. The MISmodule (figure 7.14) consists of an entrance with a trashrack, dewatering stop logs,an inclined wedgewire screen set at a shallow angle of 10 to 20 degrees to the flow,and a bypass for diverting fish to a transport pipe. The screen is mounted on a pivotshaft so that it can be cleaned via rotation and backflushing. The module is com-pletely closed and is designed to operate at water velocities ranging from 0.6 m/secto 3.3 m/sec. The module, depending on the screen angle selected, can screen amaximum of 14 to 28 m3/sec of water. For bigger discharges it is possible to addmore modules. The results of hydraulic model tests demonstrated that the MIS en-trance design created a uniform velocity distribution with approach flows skewed asmuch as 45 degrees. The uniform velocity distribution of the MIS is expected to228 Layman`s Guidebookfacilitate fish passage at higher velocities that can be achieved using any othercurrently available type of screen. Passage survival was calculated as the portion offish that were diverted live and survived a 72 hours holding period. Passage sur-vival generally exceeded 99% at velocities of 1.83 m/sec. This survival rate wasmaintained up to 3.05 m/sec for several test groups including Coho salmon, Atlanticsalmon smolts and brown trout.Recently an innovative self-cleaning static intake screen, that does not need power,has been used for fish protection. The screen uses the Coanda11 effect, a phe-nomenon exhibited by a fluid, whereby the flow tends to follow the surface of asolid object that is placed in its path. In addition, the V shaped section wire istilted on the support rods, (figure 7.15) producing offsets which cause a shearingaction along the screen surface. The water flows to the collection system of theturbine through the screen slots, which are normally 1 mm wide. Ninety per centof the suspended solid particles, whose velocity has been increased on theacceleration plate, pass over the screen thus providing excellent protection forthe turbine. Aquatic life is also prevented from entering the turbine through theslots. In fact the smooth surface of the stainless steel screen provides an excel-lent passageway to a fish bypass. The screen can handle up to 250 l/s per linearmeter of screen. A disadvantage of this type of screen is that it requires about 1 to1.20 m. of head in order to pass the water over the ogee and down into the229 Chapter 7. Environmental impactcollection system. This can be uneconomic in low head systems. Photograph7.18 shows a Coanda screen supplied by DULAS Ltd12 (e-mail dulas@gn.apc.org).The photo is published by courtesy of this company.Circular screens 8 make use of wedge-wire in short stubby pods (figure 7.16).The pods can be placed under the streambed to collect water in a manner similarto an infiltration gallery. The slot spacing between the wedge wires controls thesize of the fish that are kept out of the turbine. Several circular screens can bedisposed to feed water to the penstock, collecting relatively large volumes ofwater with a reasonable head loss. Compressed air is used for cleaning.BehaviouraI guidance systems and a variety of alternative technologies to di-vert or attract downstream migrants have been recently object of studies by theElectric Power Research Institute (EPRI). These technologies include strobe lightsfor repelling fish, mercury lights for attracting fish, a sound generating deviceknown as "hammer for repelling fish as well as quite a number of electrical guid-ance systems. It has not yet been demonstrated that these responses can bedirected reliably. Behavioural guidance techniques are site- and species-specificand it appears unlikely that behavioural methods will perform as well as fixedscreens over a wide range of hydraulic conditions13.As manifested by Mr. Turpenny of Fawley Aquatic Research Laboratories LtdU.K.14, "the disadvantage of behavioural screens over conventional mechanicalscreens is that they do not exclude 100% of fish, whereas a mechanical screen ofsufficiently small aperture will do so. Typical efficiencies for behavioural barriersrange from 50% to 90%, depending upon type and environmental and plant con-ditions. Most fish penetrating the barrier are likely to go on to pass through theturbine , thereby putting them at risk of injury.Photo 7.18230 Layman`s GuidebookFigure 7.17 illustrates the disposition of a system of underwater acoustic trans-ducers which transmit their sound into a rising bubble curtain to create a wall ofsound to guide fish out of the turbine passage. This type is known as "BioAcousticFish Fence (BAFF) and has shown a 88-100% typical fish exclusion efficiency.Trapping coIIection and trucking systems are similar to these employed withupstream migrating fish. The fish must be collected in a trap to be transported intanks15. However the trapping and collecting operation with downstream migrat-ing fish presents more difficulties than with upstream fish because there are nothigh velocity flows to attract them. Downstream fish must be collected with fish-ing nets fabricated with synthetic monophilament, or with travelling vertical screensof the same material. The collected fish show symptoms of stress and superficialinjuries that make the system questionable. However these systems are the onlyones ensuring the exclusion of eggs and larvae, although seem to be proved thatboth eggs and larvae pass through reaction turbines undamaged.231 Chapter 7. Environmental impactBypass routes must be provided to allow fish to move from the area in front of aphysical barrier back to the river.The screens located at the intake entrance do not need any return conduit becausefish are entrained by the water flow and return to the river usually over the spillwaywhich is of course less dangerous than the turbines, although it also can be damag-ing. Surprisingly, high spillways are not necessarily more dangerous for fish thanlow ones. Terminal velocity, as demonstrated by dropping salmon from helicoptersinto a pound11, is reached after about 30 meters of fall, and remains constant there-after. Eicher mentions an experimental ski-jump spillway, which throws the fish outin free fall to a pool 80 m below with a mortality rate reduced to virtually zero.When the screen is located in the intake downstream of the entrance, a bypassreturning the fish to the river is needed. According to behavioural characteristicsmigrating downstream fish cannot be expected to swim back upstream to findthe entrance, which must be located at the downstream end of the screen, as-suming the screen is inclined in the direction of the flow. Fish are frequently reluc-tant to move into small size entrances A minimum bypass entrance of 45 cm isrecommended, especially when dealing with juvenile salmonids. It would be pref-erable that the entrance width could be adjustable by the use of fabricated metalinserts to reduce the size of the operating opening. The bypass entrance designshould provide for smooth flow acceleration into the bypass conduit with no sud-den contractions, expansions or bends.For returning fish from the bypass entrance to the river, fully close conduits oropen channels can be used. Fish do not like to enter in conduits with abruptcontrast in lighting. Open channels are better suited for that role. Internal sur-faces should be very smooth to avoid fish injury. High-density polyethylenes andPVC are excellent materials for bypass conduits.232 Layman`s GuidebookAbrupt changes in section should be avoided due to their associated turbulenceand pressure changes. In full flow conduits pressures below atmospheric shouldbe avoided because they can injure or even kill fish. Air entrainment in a full flowconduit generates hydraulic turbulence and surging thus avoiding gas supersatu-ration in the water that can be detrimental to fish. Conduit discharge velocitiesshould not be so high relative to the ambient velocities in the outfall as to createshear forces that can injure fish. Velocities close to 0.8 m/sec are recommended.7.3.3.3 In the terrainCanals have always constituted an obstacle to the free passage of animals. Toavoid this, nowadays open canals are entirely buried, and even revegetated sothey do not represent any barrier. In any case in very sensitive areas, as in cer-tain areas of Asturias, where the brown bear still lives, the environmental agen-cies tend to take extreme measures and even to refuse water use authorisation.7.3.4 Archaeological and cultural objectsIn the construction phase the developer should take great care to avoid damageto archaeologic or cultural objects of a certain value. This may be particularlycritical in schemes with reservoirs, where valuable objets or even historical monu-ments can be submerged. In the Cordianes scheme mentioned above, duringthe excavation works to found the powerhouse, a middle age burial place wasfound. With the aid of government experts the place was arranged as illustratedin photo 7.19.Photo 7.8233 Chapter 7. Environmental impact7.4 Impacts from transmission lines7.4.1 Visual impactAbove ground transmission lines and transmission line corridors will have a nega-tive impact on the landscape. These impacts can be mitigated by adapting theline to the landscape, or in extreme cases burying it.The optimal technical and economic solution for a transmission line routing is thatwhich will often create the more negative aesthetic impacts. To achieve optimalclearance from the ground the pylons are placed on the top of the hills, constitut-ing a very dominating element of the landscape, A minimum of bends in the routewill reduce the number of angle and ordinary pylons and therefore reduce itscost. Aesthetically neither a high frequency of bends, nor straight routes that aremade without consideration for the terrain and landscape factors are preferred.In sensitive mountain areas where schemes are developed transmission linescan dominate the landscape and therefore damage the beauty of the scenario. Itmust be remarked that transmission lines exist even without the existence ofhydropower schemes. Villages even if they are high in the mountain require elec-tricity to make life livable, and electricity, unless generated by photovoltaic sys-tems, requires transmission lines. It is true that with a right siteing of the lines inrelation to larger landscape forms and a careful design of the pylons the impactcan be relatively mitigated. Other times, like in Cordianes, both stepping uptransformer substation and transmission lines are concealed from public viewand the situation entirely improved, but it is an expensive solution that only canbe offered if the scheme is profitable enough.Photo 7.20234 Layman`s Guidebook7.4.2 Health impactIn addition to the visual intrusion some people may dislike walking under trans-mission lines because of the perceived risks of health effects from electromag-netic fields. Apart from the fact that this risk is only perceived in high voltagetransmission lines, and never is the case in a small hydropower scheme, afterseveral years of contradictory reports, the experts nowadays consider that livingin areas close to high voltage transmission lines does not increase the risk ofcancer, and more specifically of infant leukaemia. That is the conclusion of arecent Cancer Institute report published in the prestigious medical review "TheNew England Journal of Medicine. The report insists that it is time to stop wast-ing resources on this type of study and focus research to discovering what arethe real biological causes of leukaemia.7.4.3 Birds collisionsAlthough birds are morphologically and aerodynamically adapted to fly, there arelimits in respect of their capability to avoid artificial obstacles. Areas where theelectric conductors are located close to the treetops seem to be high-risk wirestrike sites. Few collisions 26* seem to take place where it is a dense forest on oneor both sides of the line corridor. Wire strikes are especially frequent in areaswhere the distance to the forest edge is about 50 m or more on one or both sidesof the line. However the only way to completely avoid bird collisions is under-ground cabling. That is the solution adopted in Cordianes to traverse the northslope where the "urogayo, a rare bird specimen in danger of extinction, lives .Electrocution takes place whenever a bird touches two phase conductor or aconductor and an earth device simultaneously. This restricts the problem to powerlines carrying tensions below 130 kV (transmission lines in small hydropowerschemes are always 66 kV or lower). Similar to the collisions with the powerlines, electrocution has biological, topographical and technical factors, althoughthese are deeply interwoven and not easily separated. Humidity is also an im-portant factor7.5 ConclusionsA visit to Cordianes will show to any bona fide person that a small scale hydro-power scheme can be developed in a natural park without this being negativelyaffected, and at the same time avoiding the emission on other part of the countryof thousands of tonnes of greenhouse gases and inducing acid rains.235 Chapter 7. Environmental impactBibIiography1 European Commission - "Externalities of Energy - Volume 6 Wind and Hydro"EUR 16525 EN2 S. Palmer. "Small scale hydro power developments in Sweden and itd envi-ronmental consequences". HIDROENERGIA 95 Proceedings. Milano3 F. Monaco, N. Frosio, A. Bramati, "Design and realization aspects concerningthe recovery of an energy head inside a middle european town",HIDROENERGIA 93, Munich4 J. Gunther, H.P. Hagg, "Volltndig berflutetes Wasserkraftwerk Karlstor/Heidelberg am Neckar", HIDROENERGIA 93, Munich5 M. Mustin and others, "Les mthodes de dtermination des dbit rservs;Analyse et proposition d'une mthode pratique; Le dbit de garantie biologique(DGB), Report pour le Comit EDF Hydrocologie.6 Santos Coelho & Betamio de Almeida, "A computer assisted technique forthe hydraulic design of fish ladders in S.H.P." HIDROENERGIA 95, Munich7 Osborne,J. New Concepts in Fish Ladder Design (Four Volumes), BonnevillePower Administration, Project 82-14, Portland, Oregon, 19858 Department of Energy, Washington, USA. "Development of a More Fish-Tol-erant Turbine Runner" (D.O.E./ID.10571)9 George J.Eicher "Hydroelectric development: Fish and wild life considerationsHydro Review Winter 198410 Winchell, F.C. "A New Technology for Diverting Fish Past Turbines, Hydro-Review December 199011 Dulas Ltd. Machynllet, Powys, Wales SY20 8SX. e-mail dulas@gn.apc.org ."Static screening systems for small hydro". HIDROENERGIA97 ConferenceProceedings, page 19012 James J.Strong. "Innovative static self-cleaning intake screen protects bothaquatic life and turbine equipment HYDRO'88 Conference papers.13 D.R. Lambert, A. Turpenny, J.R. Nedwell "The use of acoustic fish deflectionsystems at hydro stations", Hydropower&Dams Issue One 199714 A. Turpenny, K. Hanson. "Fish passage through small hydro-turbines: Theorical,Practical and Economic Perspectives". HIDROENERGIA 97, Conference Pro-ceedings, page 451.15 Civil Engineering Guidelines for Planning and Designing Hydroelectric Devel-opments, Volume 4, American Society of Civil Engineers, New York236 Layman`s Guidebook 8.0 IntroductionAn investment in a small hydropower scheme entails a certain number of payments,extended over the project life, and procures some revenues also distributed overthe same period. The payments include a fixed component the capital cost, insur-ance, taxes other than the income taxes, etc- and a variable component operationand maintenance expenses-. At the end of the project, in general limited by theauthorisation period, the residual value will usually be positive, although some ad-ministrative authorisations demand the abandonment of all the facilities which re-vert to the State. The economic analysis compares the different possible alterna-tives to allow the choice of the most advantageous or to abandon the project.From an economic viewpoint a hydropower plant differs from a conventional ther-mal plant, because its investment cost per kW is much higher but the operatingcosts are extremely low, since there is no need to pay for fuel.The economic analysis can be made either by including the effect of the inflation oromitting it. Working in constant mpnetary value has the advantage of making theanalysis essentially independent of the inflation rate. Value judgements are easierto make in this way because they refer to a nearby point in time which means theyare presented in a currency that has a purchasing power close to present experi-ence. If there are reasons to believe that certain factors will evolve at a different ratefrom inflation, these must be treated with the differential inflation rate. For instance,if we assume that the electricity tariffs as a consequence of deregulation will growtwo points less than inflation, while the remaining factors stay constant in value, theprice of the electricity should decrease by 2% every year.8.1 Basic considerationsThe estimation of the investment cost constitutes the first step of an economicevaluation. For a preliminary approach the estimation can be based on the costof similar schemes 1,2. IDAE (Instituto para la Diversificacin y Ahorro de Energa,Spain) in its recent publication "Minicentrales Hidroelctricas 3 analyses the costof the different components of a scheme weir, water intake, canal, penstock,power-house, turbines and generators, transformers and transmission lines.Fonkenelle also has published nomograms, but only for low-head schemes4.The Departamento Nacional de Aguas e Energa Elctrica (DNAEE) has writtena computer program, FLASH, that is probably the best program for small hydrofeasibility studies5. Under a contract with the European Commission (DG XVII),the French consultant ISL is developing a computer program, running in Win-dows 95 and NT, that includes an important database for the estimation of invest-ment costs on small-hydro schemes.D.R. Miller, ESHA Vice-President has produced a computer program, to estimatethe buy-back price necessary for guaranteeing an acceptable return on invest-ment in small hydro, that includes an estimation of the investment cost. The fol-lowing table calculates the investment cost:8 Economic Analysis238 Layman`s GuidebookPlant capacity (kW) cost (ECU)250 >P> 200 200 x 2250 + balance x 2250 x 0,548165500 >P> 250 250 x 2050 + balance x 2050 x 0.8243361000 >P> 500 500 x 1870 + balance x 1870 x 0,8170342000 >P> 1000 1000 x 1700 + balance x 1700 x 0.7651115000 >P> 2000 2000 x 1500 + balance x 1500 x 0.77791810000>P> 5000 5000 x 1300 + balance x 1300 x 0,661133The investment cost of a scheme with a capacity of 2650 kW will have an invest-ment cost given by:2000 x 1500 + 650 x 1500 x 0.777918 = 3758470 ECU or 1418 ECU/kW installed.The above table doesn't take into account the head, and should be considereduseful only for medium and high head schemes.In his communication to HIDROENERGIA'97 on the THERMIE programme, H. Pauwelsof the DG XVII (Energy Technology Department), showed the enclosed graph,summarising data for schemes presented to the above programme, which correlatesthe investment cost in ECU/kW installed for different power ranges and heads.IT Power LTD Stroom Lijn, IEE Kassel 1997, presented also to HIDROENERGIA'97a computer program, "Hydrosoft, which includes a set of curves correlating theEuropean Commission European CommissionDG XII: Science, Research and DeveIopment DG XII: Science, Research and DeveIopmentDG XVII: Energy DG XVII: Energy JOULE-THERMIETHERMIE 1984-1997 THERMIE 1984-1997Specific cost of instaIIed capacity Specific cost of instaIIed capacity050010001500200025003000350040000,00 20,00 40,00 60,00 80,00 100,00 120,00Head (m)ECU/kW< 250kW250 to 1000 kW> 1000 kW239 Chapter 8. Economic analysisinvestment cost in ECU/kW and the installed capacity (between 100 kW and 10MW) for low head schemes, with 2, 3, 4 and 5 m head. The curves are reproducedhere up to a maximum capacity to 2 MW. The computer program, of course, givesthe cost directly against the installed capacity and head. A table with numerical datais also provided and makes calculation less dependent on drawn curves.However, as a cost estimate is essential for economic analysis, it is necessary asa second step, to make a preliminary design including the principal componentsof the scheme. Based on this design, budget prices for the materials can beobtained from suppliers. Such prices cannot be considered as firm prices untilspecifications and delivery dates have been provided. This will come later, duringthe actual design and procurement process.Do not forget that in a plant connected to the grid, the investment costs of theconnection line should be included, because according to various national regu-lations this line, although it sometimes becomes the property of the grid owner, isalways built at the expense of the SHP developer. A plant close to the grid con-nection point will be always cheaper than one installed far from it. The samereasoning can be applied to telephone lines. In an unmanned plant the telephoneline to transmit telemetry and alarm signals is frequently used although occa-sionally it might be cheaper to use the transmission line itself to establish a radiolink or use a digital cellular telephone provided there is good coverage.240 Layman`s Guidebook8.2 Financial mathematicsAn investment project considers revenues and expenses that take places in verydifferent periods. In any economic analysis involving economic value there arealways two variables, money and time. A certain amount of money paid or re-ceived at a point in time has a different value if it is paid or received at anotherpoint in time. Money can be invested during a certain period of time with theguarantee of a certain benefit. The term "present value describes a monetaryamount now, i.e. at a point in time other than that at which it is paid or received.For a discounting rate r, the cost Ci (or the benefit Bi), disbursed or received in theyear i, is discounted to the year 0 by the equation:Cr i Ci 0 11=+FHGGIKJJb g (8.1)The fraction within square brackets is known as the "present value factor (PVF).To find the comparable value of a given sum of money if it were received, ordisbursed, at a different time, the above formula may be used, or the correspond-ing PVF as given in Table 8.1, may be multiplied by the given sum. For instance,if the investor's opportunity earning potential is 8%, 1500 ECU to be received in 5years from now would be equivalent to receiving now,1500 11 0,10 8 1 9 . ,020. +=b g ECUCash flows occurring at different times can be converted to a common basis, Total capacity capacity/Turbine 2m 3m 4m 5m 100 50 4023 3447 3097 2854200 100 3344 2865 2574 2372300 150 3004 2574 2313 2131400 200 2786 2386 2145 1976500 250 2628 2251 2023 1864600 300 2506 2147 1929 1778700 350 2407 2063 1853 1708800 400 2326 1992 1790 1650900 450 2256 1933 1737 16001000 500 2196 1881 1690 15582000 1000 1839 1575 1416 13043000 1500 1659 1422 1277 11774000 2000 1543 1322 1188 10955000 2500 1460 1251 1124 10366000 3000 1395 1195 1074 9907000 3500 1342 1150 1033 9528000 4000 1299 1113 1000 9219000 4500 1261 1081 971 89510000 5000 1229 1053 946 872241 Chapter 8. Economic analysisTabIe 8.1VaIues of PVF for various time periods n and opportunity cost rsingIe payment uniform series of paymentsn 6% 8% 10% 12% 6% 8% 10% 12%1 0.9434 0.9259 0.9091 0.8929 0.9434 0.9259 0.9091 0.89292 0.8900 0.8573 0.8264 0.7972 1.8334 1.7833 1.7355 1.69013 0.8396 0.7938 0.7513 0.7118 2.6730 2.5771 2.4869 2.40184 0.7921 0.7350 0.6830 0.6355 3.4651 3.3121 3.1699 3.03735 0.7473 0.6806 0.6209 0.5674 4.2124 3.9927 3.7908 3.60486 0.7050 0.6302 0.5645 0.5066 4.9173 4.6229 4.3553 4.11147 0.6651 0.5835 0.5132 0.4523 5.5824 5.2064 4.8684 4.56388 0.6274 0.5403 0.4665 0.4039 6.2098 5.7466 5.3349 4.96769 0.5919 0.5002 0.4241 0.3606 6.8017 6.2469 5.7590 5.328210 0.5584 0.4632 0.3855 0.3220 7.3601 6.7101 6.1446 5.650211 0.5268 0.4289 0.3505 0.2875 7.8869 7.1390 6.4951 5.937712 0.4970 0.3971 0.3186 0.2567 8.3838 7.5361 6.8137 6.194413 0.4688 0.3677 0.2897 0.2292 8.8527 7.9038 7.1034 6.423514 0.4423 0.3405 0.2633 0.2046 9.2950 8.2442 7.3667 6.628215 0.4173 0.3152 0.2394 0.1827 9.7122 8.5595 7.6061 6.810916 0.3936 0.2919 0.2176 0.1631 10.1059 8.8514 7.8237 6.974017 0.3714 0.2703 0.1978 0.1456 10.4773 9.1216 8.0216 7.119618 0.3503 0.2502 0.1799 0.1300 10.8276 9.3719 8.2014 7.249719 0.3305 0.2317 0.1635 0.1161 11.1581 9.6036 8.3649 7.365820 0.3118 0.2145 0.1486 0.1037 11.4699 9.8181 8.5136 7.469421 0.2942 0.1987 0.1351 0.0926 11.7641 10.0168 8.6487 7.562022 0.2775 0.1839 0.1228 0.0826 12.0416 10.2007 8.7715 7.644623 0.2618 0.1703 0.1117 0.0738 12.3034 10.3711 8.8832 7.718424 0.2470 0.1577 0.1015 0.0659 12.5504 10.5288 8.9847 7.784325 0.2330 0.1460 0.0923 0.0588 12.7834 10.6748 9.0770 7.843126 0.2198 0.1352 0.0839 0.0525 13.0032 10.8100 9.1609 7.895727 0.2074 0.1252 0.0763 0.0469 13.2105 10.9352 9.2372 7.942628 0.1956 0.1159 0.0693 0.0419 13.4062 11.0511 9.3066 7.984429 0.1846 0.1073 0.0630 0.0374 13.5907 11.1584 9.3696 8.021830 0.1741 0.0994 0.0573 0.0334 13.7648 11.2578 9.4269 8.055231 0.1643 0.0920 0.0521 0.0298 13.9291 11.3498 9.4790 8.085032 0.1550 0.0852 0.0474 0.0266 14.0840 11.4350 9.5264 8.111633 0.1462 0.0789 0.0431 0.0238 14.2302 11.5139 9.5694 8.135434 0.1379 0.0730 0.0391 0.0212 14.3681 11.5869 9.6086 8.156635 0.1301 0.0676 0.0356 0.0189 14.4982 11.6546 9.6442 8.175536 0.1227 0.0626 0.0323 0.0169 14.6210 11.7172 9.6765 8.192437 0.1158 0.0580 0.0294 0.0151 14.7368 11.7752 9.7059 8.207538 0.1092 0.0537 0.0267 0.0135 14.8460 11.8289 9.7327 8.221039 0.1031 0.0497 0.0243 0.0120 14.9491 11.8786 9.7570 8.233040 0.0972 0.0460 0.0221 0.0107 15.0463 11.9246 9.7791 8.2438242 Layman`s Guidebookusing the discount method, either using the formulae, available on an electronicspreadsheet, or the Table 8.1. In this table the discount factors are calculatedfrom the discount formulas for various time periods and opportunity costs (ex-pressed as rate of discount r). The time periods can be years, quarters, monthsetc. and the periodic discount rate will be the corresponding to the period (if r isthe annual discount rate, r/4 will be the discount rate corresponding to a quarterand 1/12r the corresponding rate for one month)Although the PVF could be used to solve any present value problem that wouldarise it is convenient to define a second term in order to speed the arithmeticprocess: the present value of an annuity. An annuity is a series of equal amountsof money over a certain period of time. The present value of an annuity over nyears, with an annual payment C, beginning at the end of the first year, will be theresult of multiplying C by a factor an, equal to the present value factors:a v v v vnn= + + + +1 2 3...Is easily demonstrated thata vr rr r rrnn nnn=

= + + = +

1 1 11 1 1 b gb g b g (8.2)For instance, the present value of a series of 200 ECU payments over threeyears, beginning at the end of the first year, will be given by the product of 200ECU and the value an in equation (8.2) or by the PWF in Table 8.2a a3331 1 0 080 08 2577 200 515 42 = += =

.. . ; .b gthen ECU8.3 Methods of economic evaluationWhen comparing the investments of different projects the easiest method is tocompare the ratio of the total investment to the power installed or the ratio of thetotal investment to the annual energy produced for each project. Neverthelessthis criterion does not determine the profitability of the schemes because therevenues are not taken into account, but constitutes a first evaluation criterion. Inthe last few years, for example, to be eligible for a grant in the THERMIE pro-gram, this ratio could not exceed 2 350 ECU/kW.8.3.1 Static methods (which do not take the opportunity cost intoconsideration)8.3.1.1 Pay-back methodThe payback method determines the number of years required for the investedcapital to be offset by resulting benefits. The required number of years is termedthe payback, recovery, or break-even period.243 Chapter 8. Economic analysisThe measure is usually calculated on a before-tax basis and without discounting,i.e., neglecting the opportunity cost of capital (the opportunity cost of capital is thereturn which could be earned by using resources for the next available invest-ment purpose rather than for the purpose at hand). Investment costs are usuallydefined as first costs (civil works, electrical and hydro mechanical equipment)and benefits are the resulting net yearly revenues expected from selling theelectricity produced, after deducting the operation and maintenance costs, atconstant value money. The pay-back ratio should not exceed 7 years if the smallhydro project is to be considered profitable.However the payback does not allow the selection from different technical solu-tions for the same installation or choosing among several projects which may bedeveloped by the same promoter. In fact it does not give consideration to cashflows beyond the payback period, and thus does not measure the efficiency ofthe investment over its entire life.8.3.1.2 Return on investment methodThe return on investment (ROI) calculates average annual benefits, net of yearly costs,such as depreciation, as a percentage of the original book value of the investment.The calculation is as follows:ROI = (Average annual net benefits/Original book value) x 1008.3.2 Dynamic methodsThese methods of financial analysis take into account total costs and benefitsover the life of the investment and the timing of cashflows8.3.2.1 Net Present Value( NPV) methodThe difference between revenues and expenses, both discounted at a fixed, pe-riodic interest rate, is the net present value (NPV) of the investment.The formula for calculating net present value, assuming that the cash flows occur atequal time intervals and that the first cash flows occur at the end of the first period,and subsequent cash flow occurs at the ends of subsequent periods, is as follows:VAN = + ++ +==

R I O Mr Ji i i ii rii nb gb g 1 1 (8.3)where Ii = investment in period iRi = revenues in period iOi = operating costs in period iMi = maintenance and repair costs in period iVr = residual value of the investment over its lifetime, whenever thelifetime of the equipment is greater than the assumed working lifeof the plant (usually due to the expiration of the legal permits).r = periodic discount rate(if the period is a quarter, the periodic ratewill be 1/4 of the annual rate)n = number of lifetime periods (years, quarters, months)244 Layman`s GuidebookThe calculation is usually done for a period of thirty years, because due to thediscounting techniques used in this method, both revenues and expenses be-come negligible after a larger number of years.Different projects may be classified in order of decreasing NPV. Projects whereNPV is negative will be rejected, since that means their discounted benefits dur-ing the lifetime of the project are insufficient to cover the initial costs. Amongprojects with positive NPV, the best ones will be those with greater NPV.The NPV results are quite sensitive to the discount rate, and failure to select theappropriate rate may alter or even reverse the efficiency ranking of projects. Sincechanging the discount rate can change the outcome of the evaluation, the rateused should be considered carefully For a private promoter the discount rate willbe such that will allow him to choose between investing on a small hydro projector keep his saving in the bank. This discount rate, depending on the inflation rate,usually varies between 5% and 12%.If the net revenues are constant in time (uniform series) their discounted value isgiven by the equation (8.2).The method does not distinguish between a project with high investment costspromising a certain profit, from another that produces the same profit but needs alower investment, as both have the same NPV. Hence a project requiring onemillion ECU in present value and promises one million one hundred thousandECU profit shows the same NPV as another one with a one hundred thousandECU investment and promises two hundred thousand ECU profit (both in presentvalue). Both projects will show a one hundred thousand ECU NPV, but the firstone requires an investment ten times higher than the second does.8.3.2.2 Benefit-Cost ratioThe benefit-cost method compares the present value of the plant benefits andinvestment on a ratio basis. Projects with a ratio of less than 1 are generallydiscarded. Mathematically the Rb/c is as follows:RRrI M Orb ciini i iin/ = ++ ++

1100b gb gb g(8.4)where the parameters have the same meaning as in equation (8.3). Projects witha ratio lower than 1 are automatically rejected.8.3.2.3 Internal Rate of Return methodThe Internal Rate of Return (IRR) is the discount rate r, at which the present valueof the periodic benefits (revenues less operating and maintenance costs) is equalto the present value of the initial investment. In other words, the method calcu-lates the rate of return an investment is expected to yield.245 Chapter 8. Economic analysisThe criterion for selection between different alternatives is normally to choose theinvestment with the highest rate of return.A process of trial and error, whereby the net cash flow is computed for variousdiscount rates until its value is reduced to zero, usually calculates the rate of thereturn. Electronic spreadsheets use a series of approximations to calculate theinternal rate of return.Under certain circumstances there may be either no rate-of-return solution ormultiple solutions. An example of the type of investment that gives rise to multiplesolutions is one characterized by a net benefit stream, which is first negative,then positive and finally negative again.The following examples illustrate how to apply the above mentioned methods toa hypothetical small hydropower scheme.8.3.3 ExamplesExampIe 8.1SmaII hydropower scheme with the foIIowing characteristicsInstaIIed capacity: 4 929 kWEstimated annuaI output 15 750 MWhFirst year annuaI revenue 1 005 320 ECUIt is assumed that the price of the eIectricity wiII increase every year onepoint Iess than the infIation rateThe estimated cost of the project in ECU is as follows:1. Feasibility study 6 1002. Project design and management 151 9753. Civil works 2 884 5004. Electromechanical equipment 2 686 9305. Installation 686 930Total 6 416 435Unforeseen expenses (3%) 192 493Total investment 6 608 928 ECUThe investment cost per installed kW would be6 608 928 / 4 929 = 1 341 ECU/kWApplying the D.R. Miller curves it will be 6,417,784/4929 = 1,302 ECU/kWclose to the above estimationThe investment cost per annual MWh produced6 608 928 / 15 750 = 420 ECU/MWhThe operation and maintenance cost is estimated at 4% of the total investmentmoght 6 608 928 x 0.04 = 264 357ECUIn the analysis it is assumed that the project will be developed in four years. Thefirst year will be devoted to the feasibility study and to application for theauthorisation. Hence at the end of first year both the entire feasibility study costand half the cost of project design and management will be charged. At the endof second year the other half of the design and project management costs will becharged. At the end of the third year 60% of the civil works will be finished and246 Layman`s Guidebook50% of the electromechanical equipment paid for. At the end of the fourth yearthe whole development is finished and paid. The scheme is commissioned at theend of the fourth year and becomes operative at the beginning of the fifth (yearzero). The electricity revenues and the O&M costs are made effective at the endof each year. The electricity prices increases by one point less than the inflationrate. The water authorisation validity time has been fixed at 35 years, startingfrom the beginning of year 2. The discount rate is assumed to be 8% and theresidual value nil. Table 8.2 shows the cash flows along the project lifetime.Net Present VaIue (NPV)Equation (8.3) can be written as follows:NPV =i=4i=36R O MrIri i iiiiii ++

analysisInvestment cost (ECU) 6,608,928 Bank loan (4,515,597)O&M costs (ECU) 264,357 Loan term (years) 12Discount rate (%) 8% Interest on loan 10.0%Lifetime (years) 35Year Total Bank investor's Principal Principal Interest Revenues O & M Investor accumulatedInvestmen loan investment repayment residual on loan cash-flow cash-flow-4 (82,087) (82,087) (82,087)-3 (75,988) (75,988) (158,075)-2 (3,074,165) (2,151,916) (922,250) 0 (2,151,916) (922,250) (1,080,325)-1 (3,376,688) (2,363,682) (1,013,006) 0 (4,515,597) (215,192) (1,013,006) (2,093,331)0 0 (4,515,597) (451,560) 1,005,320 (264,357) 289,403 (1,803,928)1 (135,023) (4,380,574) (451,560) 995,267 (264,357) 144,327 (1,659,601)2 (296,835) (4,083,739) (438,057) 985,214 (264,357) (14,036) (1,673,637)3 (326,519) (3,757,220) (408,374) 975,160 (264,357) (24,089) (1,697,726)4 (359,171) (3,398,050) (375,722) 965,107 (264,357) (34,143) (1,731,869)5 (395,088) (3,002,962) (339,805) 955,054 (264,357) (44,196) (1,776,064)6 (434,596) (2,568,366) (300,296) 945,001 (264,357) (54,249) (1,830,313)7 (478,056) (2,090,310) (256,837) 934,948 (264,357) (64,302) (1,894,615)8 (525,862) (1,564,448) (209,031) 924,894 (264,357) (74,355) (1,968,971)9 (578,448) (986,000) (156,445) 914,841 (264,357) (84,409) (2,053,379)10 (636,293) (349,708) (98,600) 904,788 (264,357) (94,462) (2,147,841)11 (349,708) 0 (34,971) 894,735 (264,357) 245,699 (1,902,142)12 884,682 (264,357) 620,324 (1,281,817)13 874,628 (264,357) 610,271 (671,546)14 864,575 (264,357) 600,218 (71,328)15 854,522 (264,357) 590,165 518,83716 844,469 (264,357) 580,112 1,098,94917 834,416 (264,357) 570,058 1,669,00718 824,362 (264,357) 560,005 2,229,01219 814,309 (264,357) 549,952 2,778,96420 804,256 (264,357) 539,899 3,318,86321 794,203 (264,357) 529,846 3,848,70922 784,150 (264,357) 519,792 4,368,50223 774,096 (264,357) 509,739 4,878,24124 764,043 (264,357) 499,686 5,377,92725 753,990 (264,357) 489,633 5,867,56026 743,937 (264,357) 479,580 6,347,13927 733,884 (264,357) 469,526 6,816,66628 723,830 (264,357) 459,473 7,276,13929 713,777 (264,357) 449,420 7,725,55930 703,724 (264,357) 439,367 8,164,92631 693,671 (264,357) 429,314 8,594,24032 683,618 (264,357) 419,260 9,013,500Table 8.6250 Layman`s Guidebookequipment costs varies from country to country. Environmental requirements affecting investment costs- - differ not only from country to country but also regionto region. Buy-back electricity tariffs can be five times higher in one country thanin another.The figures have been computed in a Quattro electronic spreadsheet for a dis-count rate of 8% and a lifetime of 30 years. The enclosed table is a copy of thespreadsheet results.TabIe 8.7Country Germany France Ireland Portugal SpainRated discharge m3/s 0.3 0.6 15 2 104Gross head m 47 400 3.5 117 5Type of turbine Francis Pelton Kaplan Francis KaplanInstalled capacity kW 110 1.900 430 1.630 5.000Investment cost ECU 486.500 1.297.400 541.400 1.148.000 5.578.928Working hours h 8.209 4.105 8.400 4.012 3.150Annual production MWh 903 7.800 3.612 6.540 15.750Average price MWh ECU 76,13 53,65 23,23 53,54 63,82Annual revenues ECU 68.732 418.443 83.907 350.128 1.005.320O&M expenses ECU 19,850 51,984 25,176 22,960 157.751Gross profit ECU 48,882 366,459 58,731 327,168 847.569(O&M exp/investment)l % 4,08% 4,01% 4,65% 2,00% 3,00%Economic AnaIysisCapital cost per kW installed ECU 4,424 683 1,259 704 1.132Capital cost per MWh ECU 538.86 166.34 149.89 175.55 354,2Simple payback period aos 9.95 3.54 9.22 3.51 6,61IRR % 9.36 14.25 10.25 28.31 13,17Rb/c 1.10 2.52 1.15 2.83 1,40NPV ECU 61,941 2,559,546 112,867 2,294,295 2.456.232251 Chapter 8. Economic analysisBibIiography1. IDAE. Manual de Minicentrales Hidroelctricas. Edicin Especial CINCO DIAD. 19972. J. Fonkenelle. Comment slectioner une turbine pour basse chute. Proceedings HIDROENERGIA 91 ,AGENCE FRANCAISE POUR LA MAITRISE DE L'ENERGIE.3. DNAEE "APROVEITAMENTOS HIDRELETRICOS DE PEQUENO PORTE" Volumen V "Avaliaao de Custose Benificios de Pequenas Centrais Hidreltricas" Modelo FLASH, Braslia 19874. P. Fraenkel et al "Hydrosoft: A software tool for the evaluation of low-head hydropower esources".HIDROENERGIA97 Conference Proceedings, page 380252 Layman`s Guidebook9.0 IntroductionExploitation of small-scale hydro power plants is the subject of government regu-lations and administrative procedures, which, for the time being, vary from Mem-ber State to Member State.The regulations actually in force in most member states, include economic, tech-nical and procedural issues. The economic issues mainly refer to who can gener-ate electricity; the maximum installed power to be considered "small and theconditions for the sale of electricity, including purchasing prices and possible sub-sidies. The technical issues mainly relate to specifications for connection to thegrid. The procedural issues concern water-use licensing, planning permission,construction authorisation and commissioning of the plant.The authorisation procedures, although somewhat arbitrary, have been until now,well defined. Nowadays the approaching deregulation of the energy market is mak-ing the situation more fluid, especially in the aspects related to buy-back priceswhich it is impossible to describe accurately. Readers interested in the subject, as itwas in 1997 should read the 1994 EUR report "Small Hydropower General Frame-work for Legislation and Authorisation Procedures in the European Union presentedby ESHA under contract No.: 4.1030/E/93.07.9.1 Economic issuesIn most Member States, electricity generation and distribution has been up tonow, and in some countries still is, a monopoly of the state-owned utility or of thewell-established private utilities. Nevertheless electricity generation by indepen-dent producers is also permitted although in some of them the electricity gener-ated must be consumed at the generator's own facilities, any generation surplusbeing delivered to the grid . In most member states, private generators can de-liver to the grid all the generated electricity but they cannot sell it to third parties.Prices for the electricity delivered to the grid vary from country to country, thusmaking the investment worthwhile in some of them but not in others.In France the Law 46-628 (8.4.1946) nationalised the electricity industry. Onlycompanies that generated less than 12 gigawatts in 1942 and 1943 were ex-cluded from nationalisation. Nevertheless the amendment of 2.8.1949 (LoiArmengoud) permitted any individual or corporation to generate electricity in plantswith a power capacity up to 8000 kVA. The decree 55-662 (20.5.1955) compelsEDF to buy electricity produced by private generators, and the decree 56-125(28.11.1956) fixed the sale and purchase terms and tariffs to be applied; tariffsthat evolve in parallel with the E.D.F. tariffs. The private generator can choosebetween several types of tariffs that take into account different kinds of hourlyand seasonal discrimination. Almost all independent producers choose the sim-plified tariff, with two prices for the kWh: one for the winter season (Nov/March)and another for the summer season (April/Oct), independently of the time of theday the energy is delivered. The Federation of Independent Producers (EAF)negotiated this tariff with EDF, valid for a period of ten years, and applicable toindependent producers with hydro plants up to a capacity of 4.500 kW.9. Administrative procedures254 Layman`s GuidebookIn Greece the generation transmission and distribution of electricity constitutes amonopoly of the state utility Public Power Corporation (PPC) established by theLaw 1468/50. Nevertheless the Law 1559/1985 permits any individual or corpo-rate body to generate electricity for their own use, in hydroelectric schemes up to5000 kVA, after approval by PPC. The plant can be connected to the grid todeliver surplus electricity, provided the generated power does not exceed twicethe consumption of the generator himself. For that, a contract between P.P.C. andthe autoproducer is needed, according to the Ministerial Decree 2769/1988. TheMinisterial Decree 2752/1988 established the prices at which P.P.C. purchaseselectrical energy from the auto-producersIn Italy the Laws no.9/1991, 10/1991 and 308/1992 empower any person, corporatebody or local community to generate electricity with renewable resources, in plantswith a maximum apparent power of 3.000 kVA. ENEL, the state electrical utility, hasto buy the electricity generated by such independent producers and the ProvedimentoCIP 15/1989, modified in August 1990 and finally revised in September 1992 (CIP 6/92), determines the price to be paid for it. At the time of writting (1998) ENEL is beingprivatised, and so the past tariffs may not be maintained.In Portugal according to the Decree 189/88 of 27.05.1988, any person or corpo-rate body, public or private, can generate electricity, provided it employs renew-able resources, national fuels, urban or agricultural waste, complies with the tech-nical and safety regulations in force and the apparent power of the scheme doesnot surpass 10.000 kVA. Local communities can invest in the capital of the abovementioned corporate bodies. Compulsory purchase benefits are granted to pri-vate generators. The state utility, EDP, is required by law to buy the electricityproduced in the above mentioned circumstances. The situation here is similar tothat of Italy because EDP is also likely to be privatisedIn Spain the Law 82/1980, Art.7, acknowledges the autoproducer, a person orcorporate body that produce electricity to meet a part or the whole of its ownneeds. The RD 907/1982 develops the Article specifying that, to be consideredas auto-producers, they must employ renewable resources, urban or agriculturalwastes, or conventional fuel in heat and power schemes. It is understood that hismain activity is not the production and distribution of electricity. His installationcan be isolated or connected to the grid for an additional supply or to dispose ofsurpluses. The Law also states that any person or corporate body can generateelectricity in small hydroelectric plants with a maximum apparent power of 10.000kVA, either to meet its needs or to supply to the grid. Buy-back tariffs are now(1998) being discussed as a part of the new Electricity Act.In the UK the Electricity Act 1989 denationalised the electricity industry, and en-abled the Secretary of State for Energy, by Orders, to regulate competition withinthe privatised industry, and between it and genuine independents. At the time ofwriting the situation is fluid and contradictory statements emerge quite frequentlyfrom the Department of Energy. Section 32 of the Act sets out to protect thepublic interest through continuity of supply by requiring that the public electricitysuppliers (the distributors) contract for some capacity of non-fossil fuelled gen-eration, of which some may be nuclear and some renewable (the non-fossil fuelobligation or NFFO). Section 33 enables the Secretary of State to levy money onsales of fossil-fuelled electricity (the NFFO or ), of which some may be nuclear255 Chapter 9. Administrative proceduresand some renewable. Section 33 enables the Secretary of State to levy a tax onsales of fossil-fuelled electricity and to distribute the proceedsto cover the addedcost of the non-fossil supplies over their cost had they been fossil-fuelled. Toimplement all that, a Non-Fossil Purchasing Agency (NFPA) has been set up.The NFFO does not apply in Scotland, which already has 50% of non-fossil gen-eration (nuclear and hydro). However a Scottish Renewables Order, or SRO, isissued at (until1988) about 2 years intervals which operates similarly to the NFFOin England and Wales, though the contracted prices are 10-15% lower. As themajor part of the small hydropower potential of the UK lies in Scotland, this pricedifferential detracts from its full development.The price situation is becoming particularly critical at a time when much progresshas been achieved towards completion of the Internal Energy Market. Opening themarkets for electricity will bring market forces into play in sectors which until recentlywere for the most part dominated by monopolies. This will provide a challenging newenvironment for renewable energies, providing more opportunities but also posingthe challenge of a very cost-competitive environment. Suitable accompanying mea-sures are needed in order to foster the development of renewablesAccording to the White Paper for a Community Strategy and Action Plan onRENEWABLE SOURCES OF ENERGY, COM (97) 599 final (26/11/97): "A com-prehensive strategy for renewables has become essential for a number of rea-sons. First and foremost, without a coherent and transparent strategy and anambitious overall objective for renewables penetration, these sources of energywill not make major inroads into the Community energy balance. Technologicalprogress by itself can not break down several nontechnical barriers, which ham-per the penetration of renewable energy technologies in the energy markets. Atpresent, prices for most classical fuels are relatively stable at historically lowlevels and thus in themselves militate against recourse to renewables. This situ-ation clearly calls for policy measures to redress the balance in support of thefundamental environmental and security responsibilities referred to above. With-out a clear and comprehensive strategy accompanied by legislative measures,their development will be retarded." The above statement calls for a new Directive dealing with the relations betweenproducers and the Distribution utilities. A greater use of structural funds to sup-port renewables as suggested by the European Parliament would help to de-velop this market."The Member States have a key role to play in taking the responsibility to promoteRenewables, through national action plans, to introduce the measures necessaryto promote a significant increase in renewables penetration, and to implement thisstrategy and Action Plan in order to achieve the national and European objectives.It is the case that certain countries e.g. Portugal and Spain- had already made alegislative effort to cope with the situation, and others are sure to follow, either bythemselves or under pressure of the Commission. The White Paper states thatlegislative action will be taken at EU level when measures at national level areinsufficient or inappropriate and when harmonisation is required across the EU.256 Layman`s Guidebook9.3 How to support renewable energy under deregulation*We are moving away from a monopoly on generation toward a competitive mar-ket in which customers will have the opportunity to choose among power suppli-ers. We are moving away from complex regulatory schemes toward greater reli-ance upon market mechanisms. But as we restructure the electric industry, it willbe the essential role of Governments to establish new market rules that willguide competition. One essential element of the new market rules is to ensurethat those rules drive the restructured market toward cleaner resources that arecompatible with the public interest. Fossil fuels are causing enormous damage tothe environment, including smog, acid rain, global climate change, and mercurypoisoning in lakes. Climate scientists overwhelmingly agree that greenhouse gasesare causing the climate to change and believe that serious damage to the earth'senvironment will result, with enormous consequences for humanity. Renewableenergy technologies provide critical environmental benefits; and use indigenousresources that reduce our dependence upon imported fuels.Governmental options to support renewables fall into four categories. The first cat-egory involves a requirement that a certain percentage of generation be renewable,through set asides, portfolio standards, or simple mandates. The second approachfocus on setting limits to emissions of fossil fuel generators. The third categorycontains a variety of approaches, such as green marketing and education. Thefourth approach is to set a price (from 80% to 90%) of the average electricity price(total invoices divided by number of kWh invoiced), to be paid by the distributors tothe independent producers generating electricity with renewable resources.Some of the above approaches would require financial aid from the State. How toget the money for that purpose? Clean air is a benefit shared by all, therefore allcustomers should share the cost. Under most proposed industry structures, the"wires company would continue to be a regulated monopoly. Since all buyersand sellers would have to use the "wires company, this is the only place that noelectricity company can short-circuit. This fund could also finance RD&D, as wellas renewable generation projects that are above market prices.9.5.1 Set asidesA set-aside is a requirement that a portion of new generation capacity be fromrenewable sources. Currently five USA states and the United Kingdom have set-asides for clean energy, commonly in the form of a requirement on regulatedutilities. There have been a number of ways proposed to continue mandatedinvestment in renewables in a competitive market*Note of the author: Most of the comments under this section have been obtainedthrough the EIectric Library in Internet and in a good part have been inspired on apaper by B. PauIos and C. Dyson "Policy Options For the Support of RenewableEnergy In a Restructured Electricity Industry"257 Chapter 9. Administrative procedures9.2.1.1 NFFO (Non Fossil Fuel Obligation)The UK Government provides support principally through the Non Fossil FuelObligation (known as the NFFO) in England and Wales, the Scottish RenewablesObligation (SRO) in Scotland and the Northern Ireland NFFO. The NFFO re-quires Recs. to purchase specified amounts of electricity from renewable sources.Projects proposed must represent new capacity and must operate on renewableenergy. The NFFO is structured to include a number of technology bands to en-able a variety of technologies to contribute to the obligation. The current bandsare landfill gas, hydro, wind, municipal and industrial waste, energy crops, com-bined heat and power schemes and agricultural and forestry waste.Support for NFFO and SRO is funded through the Fossil Fuel Levy on electricitysales. This levy, following the flotation of British Energy in July 1996, was re-duced to 3.7% for the period November 1996 to 31 March 1997 and to 2.2% from1 April 1997. In Scotland, the fossil fuel levy to cover renewables obligations rosefrom 0.5% to 0.7% from 1 April 1997. Financed through this Fossil Fuel Levy,renewable electricity producers get the difference between the NFFO contractprice and the electricity pool priceTo date, there have been four NFFO orders. The first NFFO-1 order was made inSeptember 1990 for 75 contracts and 152 MW capacity. NFFO-2 was made in Oc-tober 1991 for 122 contracts and 472 MW capacity. NFFO-3 was made in Decem-ber 1994 for 141 contracts and 627 MW capacity and NFFO-4 was made in Febru-ary 1997 for 195 contracts and 843 MW capacity. Proposals for a fifth NFFO orderwill be made in late 1998. Scottish Office expects to make an announcement inrespect of proposals for a third Scottish Renewables Order, SRO-3, shortly.9.2.1.2 Renewable Portfolio Standard (RPS)In USA, the most popular way to continue mandated investment in renewables ina competitive market is the "Renewable Portfolio Standard (RPS), as proposedby the American Wind Energy Association (AWEA) and adopted by the CaliforniaPUC. The portfolio standard requires retail sellers (or distribution companies) tobuy a set amount of renewably generated electricity from wholesale power sup-pliers. Current proposals set the percentage at the present level of renewableenergy production; roughly 21 percent in California.The requirements would be tradable so those power suppliers who chose not toinvest in renewable generators themselves could buy credits from those who did.If a retail seller had sales of 1,000,000-kilowatt hours in one year, they would berequired to have generated or purchased 210,000 kilowatt hours using renew-able resources to meet the Renewable Portfolio Standard. If they did not meetthis requirement, they could purchase credits from a California local distributionutility or other retail seller that had more than 21% of their sales from renewableresources. Credit transactions would not actually result in kilowatt-hours deliv-ered to the retail seller needing the credits. Credit trades would result in a mon-etary exchange for the right to use the credits.In this pure form, the portfolio standard would promote only the lowest costrenewables. There is currently pending in the California legislature a bill that wouldrequire power suppliers to purchase a minimum amount of electricity from biomass258 Layman`s Guidebookgenerators. In fact to support technologies that are less competitive, awards couldbe given to separate bands, like biomass, wind, solar and waste-to-energy, as in theUK's Non Fossil Fuel Obligation.9.2.2 Emission Taxes, Caps and CreditsEmissions taxes, caps, and credits are all policies, which can promote renewableenergy use. Renewable energy sources produce few or no emissions of sulphurdioxide (SO2), carbon dioxide (CO2), oxides of nitrogen, and other air pollutants.Policies, which increase the cost of such emissions, internalise the social costs ofpollution, making renewable energy sources more competitive. Under a restruc-tured utility industry, emission-based policies can be a market approach to pro-moting renewables.Of this group of emission policies, taxes have been used the least. Emissiontaxes can be assessed a number of ways. If reasonable estimates of the costs ofthe emissions to society are available, as they are for SO2, then this is the mostequitable method. However, for many emissions, such as CO2, reliable cost es-timates are not available. In these cases it may be necessary to base the taxeson the costs of pollution control or some arbitrary amount. The design is intendedto make the tax changes revenue neutral, shifting $1.5 billion in state taxes from"goods like income and property, to a tax on "bads.Emission credits are permits that allow an electric generator to release an airpollutant. These credits can be traded with other polluters, providing an incentivefor companies to reduce emissions below mandated levels. Currently a nationalmarket for tradable permits is only available for SO2 emissions. However, theEPA is considering expanding credit trading to NO2 and mercury emissions.A positive feature of emission taxes and credits is their efficiency in allocatingpollution costs. Electricity generators pay directly for the pollution they produce.Low or no emission renewable energy sources are thus able to compete on amore even playing field. Emission taxes also generate revenues that could beused to support renewable generation or renewable research and developmentIn USA, the recent introduction of commodity markets for emission credits shouldgive utilities more options for managing the uncertainty of future credit prices Thebiggest problem with energy and emission taxes is that they are politically un-popular.9.2.3 Green pricing.Green pricing is an evolving utility service that responds to utility customers' pref-erences for electricity derived from renewable energy sources such as solar, wind,or biomass. Under green pricing, utilities offer customers a voluntary program orservice to support electricity generated from renewable energy systems. Cus-tomers are asked to pay a rate premium, which is meant to cover the costs thatthe utility incurs above those paid today for electricity from conventional fuels.Surveys indicate that in USA and in Denmark many consumers are willing to paya premium for green power. A 1995 survey conducted by seven USA utilities259 Chapter 9. Administrative proceduresfound that 45 percent of respondents were willing to pay a surcharge of up to 4percent for green power; 29 percent were willing to pay up to 9 percent; 18 per-cent were willing to pay up to 19 percent; and 10 percent were willing to pay up toa 29 percent surchargeKnowledge of and experience with green-pricing programs is only just develop-ing. These programs tend to fall into one of three categories: (1) a renewableenergy contribution fund, which offers customers an opportunity to contribute to afund to be used in the future to pay for as-yet-unspecified renewable electricityprojects; (2) tailored renewable energy projects, in which customers pay a pre-mium price for power generated from a specific renewable electric project; and(3) a renewable electric grid service, for which the utility may bundle power froma number of renewable projects with other power sources for sale to customers.9.2.4 Imposed tariffsGermany, and Spain support special tariffs for a certain number of technologybands. In Spain the buyback tariffs for those bands, varies from 80% to 90% ofthe average national electricity price and are paid by the distribution utilities. TheMinister of Industry and Energy fix the bonus to be paid for the electricity gener-ated with the technologies comprised in the different bands. The situation in Ger-many was very similar after the law issued in December 1996.9.2.5. MiscellaneousESHA Vice President, David R. Miller, made a very interested proposal: the modu-lated tariff. Actually in the cost price or renewable electricity, the influence of thecapital cost is decisive. According to the different studies see chapter 8 theinvestment cost per kWh generated decreases with the size of the plant. Figure9.1 shows the trend in capital cost per kW installed. Consequently, to get a cer-tain return on investment, the price to be paid for the electricity should be higherin smaller plants that in larger plants. In order to make things D. Miller proposesmodulate the tariff in function of the amount of electricity delivered to the net.Calculations indicate that High Head Installations with a 45% output requiring a10% Real rate of Return over 10 years need price modules as follows:1st Million Kwh at 10.58 Ecu cents yielding 10.58 Ecu cents2nd Million 8.89 " " 9.74 "3rd Million 6.27 " " 8.58 "4th Million 5.56 " " 7.83 "5th & 6th 5.44 " " 7.03 "710 Million 5.30 " " 6.34 "Let us suppose that '90% of the average selling price' or 'city gate plus the tax' isequivalent to ca. 6.5 Ecu cents, we may then propose that this should be thebase price for all Small Hydro Producers. But producers may opt to avail of amodulated tariff as follows:260 Layman`s Guidebook1st Million Kwh at 10.58 yields 10.58 Ecu cents kWh2nd Million 8.89 " 9.73 "3rd Million 6.20 " 8.55 "4th Million 5.52 " 7.80 "5th and 6th Million 5.46 " 7.02 "7-10 Million 5.26 " 6.32 "9.3 Technical aspectsIn all Member States the independent producer must meet a minimum of techni-cal requirements to be connected to the grid, so that end users will not be af-fected by the service's quality.In Belgium the technical specifications for the connection to the grid of indepen-dent power plants of less than 1 MW installed power are set out in the noteC.G.E.E. 2735 of 10.2.1987.In France the technical requirements for connection to the grid are regulated byEDF bylaws. The connection point will be fixed by E.D.F and in case of disagree-ment, by the DIGEC. The line between the powerhouse and the grid has to bebuilt at the expense of the independent producer. The same happens in Italy,where ENEL states the technical conditions and the connection fees.In Greece technical conditions for the connection of private generators to the gridare listed in the Ministerial Decree 2769/1988.261 Chapter 9. Administrative proceduresIn Portugal the connection point will be chosen by agreement between the par-ties. In case of disagreement the Directorate General of Energy (DGE) will arbi-trate the conflict within 30 days. The line between the powerhouse and the gridhas to be built at the expense of the producer but then becomes part of the grid.The maximum nominal apparent total power of the plant will be 100 kVA, if it isconnected to a low voltage line or 10.000 kVA if it is connected to a medium orhigh voltage line. Asynchronous generators when connected to a medium or highvoltage line may not exceed 5000 kVA. The apparent power of the plant may notexceed the minimum short-circuit power at the connection point.The technical requirements for the connection to the grid are specified in a docu-ment published by the Ministry of Industry and Energy "Guia Tcnico dasInstalaes de produo independente de energia elctrica (December 1989)In Spain the OM 5.9.1985 stipulates the technical requirements for the connec-tion to the grid of small hydroelectric plants. The distributor to which the privategenerator will be connected must indicate the connection point, the connectionvoltage, and the maximum and minimum short-circuit power. The connection pointshould be chosen to minimise the investment on the connection line. In case ofdisagreement the Directorate General of Energy (DGE) or the corresponding re-gional authority will arbitrate. Asynchronous generators can be connected to alow voltage line, whenever its maximum nominal apparent power does not ex-ceed neither 100 kVA or 50% of the power of the transformer feeding the line. Forplants connected to medium or high tension lines, the maximum total nominalapparent power of the generators should not exceed 5.000 kVA if they are asyn-chronous, or 10.000 kVA if they are synchronous. In both cases the apparentpower cannot exceed 50% of the power of the transformer feeding the line.In the United Kingdom the Electricity Council Regulation G59 specifies require-ments for paralleling independent generators with the national distribution sys-tem. The main aim is safety, for both parties. Recent developments have enabledmanufacturers to meet the requirements at an economic cost, certainly for gen-erators who can supply the distribution system at 15 kW and above, both at singleand three phase, 240/415 volts, 50 Hz.In Scotland the new electricity Companies are in the course of producing theirown requirements for grid connections but in the current economic climate thereis no incentive to produce and publish these in the near future.9.4 Procedural issuesThe administrative procedures needed to develop a small hydropower site arecomplex and, in general, very lengthy. These procedures concern water-use li-censing, planning permission, construction requirements and commissioning andoperation of the plant.Table 9.1, reproduced from a presentation by George Babalis to HIDROENERGIA97, identifies the administrative procedures, still in force, in the E.U Member States,for authorisation to use water.262 Layman`s GuidebookAt present, a developer who decides to invest in the construction of a small hy-dropower scheme should be prepared for a three years hurdle-race with a highprobability of getting a "no at the end or no answer at all. If the European Com-mission wishes to achieve its ALTENER objectives, concrete actions aimed atremoving the existing barriers to the development of SHP relationships betweenutilities and independent producers, administrative procedures and financial con-straints- should be undertaken.In order to attain the ambitious ALTENER objectives in electricity generationthrough renewables, new schemes must be developed. These never will be pos-sible unless an appropriate framework is set up. To eliminate the procedural bar-riers, administrations must give authorisation within a reasonable period (18TabIe 9.1Country Authority granting rights for water use VaIidity time of the authorisacinAustria < 200 kW IocaI governments usuaI 30 years> 200 kW country governments possible more (60-90 years)Belgium < 1MW the provinces undetermined> 1MW same + Ministry of Energy 33 a 99 aosDenmark Ministry of Energy undeterminedFrance < 4,5 MW Prefecture> 4,5 MW State in practice up to 40 yearsGermany Lnders 30 yearsGreece Ministry of Energy 10 years, renewableIreland Not needed. Riparian rights in force perpetualItaly < 3MW regional authorities> 3MW Ministry of Industry 30 yearLuxemburg Ministries of Agriculture,Public Works,Environm.& Employment + local authorities undeterminedNetherlands National & Local Water Boards at mnimum 20 yearsPortugal DRARN (Regional Authority for Environ- 35 years renewablement & Natural Resources)Spain Basin authority except in some rivers inCatalunya and Galicia 25 years + 15 of graceSweden Water Court perpetual (30 years)U. K. Environmental Agency England & Wales 15 yearsIn Scotland not required if P<1MW; Scotland undetrminedif P>1 MW Secretary of State263 Chapter 9. Administrative proceduresmonths), and by introducing the principle that the authorisation is granted, whenno answer is given within the fixed period or, based on objective criteria it isdenied..9.5 Environmental constraintsIn chapter 7 environmental burdens and impacts have been identified, and somemitigating measures have been advanced. It has been made clear that small hydro-power, by not emitting noxious gases greenhouse or acid rain gases- has greatadvantages from a global viewpoint. Notwithstanding that, the developer should imple-ment the necessary mitigation measures so that the local environment is minimallyaffected. Small hydropower uses, but does not consume water, nor does it pollute it.It has been demonstrated, see chapter7, that provided the scheme is profitableenough it may be possible to substantially increase the investment to implementmitigating measures so that development is possible even in the most sensitivenatural park. The French position barring the possibility of developing small hy-dropower schemes on a certain number of rivers, without previous dialogue, isunjustified.From all the environmental aspect the most crucial and controversial one is thedetermination of the reserved flow. For the developer the fact of producing elec-tricity without damaging the global atmosphere merits every kind of support with-out heavy curtailments in the generation capacity; for the environmental agen-cies a low reserved flow is equivalent to an attack to a public good which is theaquatic fauna. Only a dialogue between the parties based on the methodologiesmentioned in chapter 7 can open the way to a mutual understanding.264 Layman`s GuidebookAIternating current (AC): electric current that reverses its polarity periodically (in contrast to direct current).In Europe the standard cycle frequency is 50 Hz, in N. and S. America 60 Hz.Anadromous fish: fish (e.g. salmon) which ascend rivers from the sea at certain seasons to spawn.Average DaiIy FIow: the average daily quantity of water passing a specified gauging station.BasefIow: that part of the discharge of a river contributed by groundwater flowing slowlythrough the soil and emerging into the river through the banks and bed.BFI basefIow index: the proportion of run-off that baseflow contributes.ButterfIy VaIve: a disc type water control valve, wholly enclosed in a circular pipe, that may beopened and closed by an external lever. Often operated by a hydraulic system.Capacitor: a dielectric device which momentarily absorbs and stores electric energy.Catchment Area: the whole of the land and water surface area contributing to the discharge at aparticular point on a watercourse.Cavitation: a hydraulic phenomenon whereby liquid gasifies at low pressure and the vapourbubbles form and collapse virtually instantaneously causing hydraulic shock tothe containing structure. This can lead to severe physical damage in some cases.Compensation fIow: the minimum flow legally required to be released to the watercourse below anintake, dam or weir, to ensure adequate flow downstream for environmental,abstraction or fisheries purposes.Demand (EIectric): the instantaneous requirement for power on an electric system (kW or MW).Demand Charge that portion of the charge for electric supply based upon the customer's demandcharacteristics.Direct Current (DC): electricity that flows continuously in one direction sd contrasted with alternatingcurrent.Draft tube: a tube full of water extending from below the turbine to below the minimumwater tailrace level.Energy: work, measured in Newton metres or Joules. The electrical energy term generallyused is kilowatt-hours (kWh) and represents power (kilowatts) operating forsome period of time (hours) 1 kWh = 3.6x103 Joules.Evapotranspiration: the combined effect of evaporation and transpiration.FDC: flow duration curve:: a graph of discharges against v. the percentage of time (ofthe period of record) during which particular magnitudes of discharge wereequalled or exceeded.Fish Ladder: a structure consisting e.g. of a series of overflow weirs which are arranged insteps that rise about 30 cm in 3 50 4 m horizontally, and serve as a means forallowing migrant fish to travel upstream past a dam or weir.GLOSSARY267Output: the amount of power (or energy, depending on definition) delivered by a pieceof equipment, station or system.(In) ParaIIeI: the term used to signify that a generating unit is working in connection with themains supply, and hence operating synchronously at the same frequency.Overspeed: the speed of the runner when, under design conditions, all external loads areremovedP.E.: polyethylenePeak Load: the electric load at the time of maximum demand.Peaking PIant: a powerplant which generates principally during the maximum demand periodsof an electrical supply network.Penstock: a pipe (usually of steel, concrete or cast iron and occasionally plastic) thatconveys water under pressure from the forebay to the turbine.PercoIation: the movement of water downwards through the soil particles to the phreaticsurface (surface of saturation within the soil; also called the groundwater level).Power: the capacity to perform work. Measured in joules/sec or watts (1MW = 1 j/s).Electrical power is measured in kW.Power factor: the ratio of the amount of power, measured in kilowatts (kW) to the apparentpower measured in kilovolt-amperes (kVA).Rating curve: the correlation between stage and discharge.ReynoIds Number: a dimesionless parameter used in pipe friction calculations (interalia), and derivedfrom pipe diameter, liquid velocity and kinematic viscosity.Rip-rap: stone, broken rock or concrete block revetment materials placed randomly inlayers as protection from erosion.Runoff: the rainfall which actually does enter the stream as either surface or subsurfaceflow.Run-of-river scheme: plants where water is used at a rate no greater than that with which it "runsdown the river.SOIL: a parameter of permeabilityStage(of a river): the elevation of water surfaceSupercriticaI fIow: rapid flow who is unaffected by conditions downstreamSynchronous speed: the rotational speed of the generator such that the frequency of the alternatingcurrent is precisely the same as that of the system being supplied.TaiIrace: the discharge channel from a turbine before joining the main river channel.